Selected quad for the lemma: christian_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
christian_n apostle_n christian_a church_n 3,829 5 4.2002 3 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A13155 An abridgement or suruey of poperie conteining a compendious declaration of the grounds, doctrines, beginnings, proceedings, impieties, falsities, contradictions, absurdities, fooleries, and other manifold abuses of that religion, which the Pope and his complices doe now mainteine, and vvherewith they haue corrupted and deformed the true Christian faith, opposed vnto Matthew Kellisons Suruey of the new religion, as he calleth it, and all his malicious inuectiues and lies, by Matthevv Sutcliffe. Sutcliffe, Matthew, 1550?-1629. 1606 (1606) STC 23448; ESTC S117929 224,206 342

There are 38 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

sincere_o than_o they_o albeit_o we_o detest_v and_o renounce_v all_o popery_n but_o all_o those_o error_n and_o corruption_n in_o doctrine_n both_o concern_v faith_n and_o manner_n which_o the_o synagogue_n of_o rome_n &_o her_o lover_n by_o colour_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n and_o by_o his_o persuasion_n and_o enforcement_n from_o time_n to_o time_n bave_v receive_v profess_a and_o teach_v either_o contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n &_o institution_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n or_o else_o above_o the_o same_o and_o above_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o ancient_a primitive_a church_n neither_o do_v we_o otherwise_o single_a popery_n from_o christian_a religion_n than_o the_o ancient_a catholic_n do_v distinguish_v arianisme_n macedonianisme_n nestorianisme_n eutychianisme_n pelagianisme_n and_o other_o heresy_n from_o the_o true_a faith_n for_o although_o the_o arian_n macedonian_n nestorian_n eutychian_o pelagian_o and_o other_o heretic_n do_v hold_v in_o term_n the_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n yet_o for_o that_o the_o first_o deny_v the_o divinity_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o second_o the_o divinity_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o three_o the_o union_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n the_o four_o the_o verity_n of_o christ_n humane_a nature_n the_o five_o the_o necessity_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o add_v diverse_a novelty_n to_o the_o ancient_a faith_n they_o be_v repute_v heretic_n and_o by_o their_o heresy_n ancient_a christian_n understand_v not_o any_o point_n of_o christian_a faith_n but_o their_o singular_a opinion_n which_o they_o maintain_v obstinate_o against_o the_o faith_n the_o apostle_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n do_v teach_v that_o doctrine_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v from_o christ_n jesus_n and_o deliver_v the_o same_o to_o their_o successor_n and_o they_o to_o other_o the_o first_o christian_n likewise_o receive_v the_o same_o pure_a and_o without_o corruption_n but_o as_o the_o envious_a man_n while_o the_o man_n of_o the_o house_n sleep_v sow_v tare_n among_o good_a corn_n as_o we_o read_v matth._n 13._o so_o false_a apostle_n and_o heretic_n from_o time_n to_o time_n have_v go_v about_o with_o their_o cockle_n and_o tare_n to_o corrupt_v the_o sincere_a doctrine_n of_o the_o faith_n abuse_v the_o negligence_n of_o true_a teacher_n to_o their_o own_o advantage_n but_o yet_o none_o more_o cunning_o and_o fraudulent_o than_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o their_o complice_n for_o other_o heretic_n be_v soon_o espy_v by_o their_o opposition_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n &_o christ_n true_a church_n timely_o betray_v themselves_o but_o these_o under_o the_o title_n of_o apostolic_a man_n and_o catholic_n have_v corrupt_v the_o apostolic_a and_o catholic_a faith_n and_o under_o the_o name_n and_o title_n of_o the_o church_n have_v undermine_v the_o foundation_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o under_o their_o sheep_n clothing_n have_v cover_v their_o raven_a and_o wolvish_a nature_n and_o so_o have_v they_o lurk_v many_o year_n mingle_v their_o tradition_n and_o invention_n with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o for_o truth_n deliver_v erroneous_a and_o superstitious_a doctrine_n and_o under_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n endeavour_v to_o erect_v the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n at_o the_o first_o they_o clog_v religion_n with_o diverse_a superfluous_a and_o superstitious_a ceremony_n &_o load_v christian_n with_o the_o burden_n of_o their_o decretales_fw-la and_o censure_n but_o in_o the_o end_n they_o corrupt_v both_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n &_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n boniface_n the_o 3._o obtain_v of_o phocas_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v repute_v head_n of_o other_o church_n and_o this_o be_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n in_o the_o wicked_a assembly_n under_o irene_n that_o semipagan_a empress_n at_o nice_a the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n begin_v first_o to_o be_v establish_v &_o this_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n willing_o embrace_v use_v this_o occasion_n to_o establish_v their_o own_o kingdom_n &_o to_o free_v themselves_o from_o the_o government_n of_o the_o emperor_n then_o also_o the_o superstitious_a worship_n of_o saint_n relic_n begin_v to_o be_v authorise_v and_o unwritten_a tradition_n under_o the_o title_n of_o apostolic_a authority_n to_o be_v commend_v as_o appear_v in_o the_o three_o action_n of_o that_o synod_n the_o french_a king_n charles_n the_o great_a and_o his_o father_n pipin_n and_o other_o their_o successor_n endow_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o great_a temporal_a possession_n which_o make_v they_o strong_a and_o powerful_a nicolas_n the_o 2._o in_o a_o certain_a synod_n at_o rome_n first_o decree_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v present_a in_o the_o eucharist_n and_o handle_v with_o the_o priest_n hand_n and_o press_v with_o the_o tooth_n and_o this_o fall_v out_o about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1059._o gregory_n the_o 7._o first_o begin_v to_o handle_v the_o temporal_a sword_n and_o manifest_o to_o oppose_v himself_o against_o the_o roman_a emperor_n before_o his_o time_n say_v otho_n frisingensis_n we_o do_v not_o read_v of_o any_o emperor_n excommunicate_v by_o the_o pope_n nether_a do_v ever_o any_o bishop_n of_o rome_n presume_v to_o depose_v the_o emperor_n before_o he_o some_o allege_v ambroses_n example_n but_o that_o show_v that_o bishop_n never_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o depose_v prince_n but_o only_o to_o refrain_v from_o communicate_v with_o they_o that_o which_o gregory_n the_o seven_o begin_v that_o in_o the_o end_n his_o successor_n obtain_v for_o by_o their_o practice_n they_o subdue_v the_o emperor_n and_o give_v way_n to_o the_o turk_n the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v first_o establish_v by_o innocent_a the_o three_o in_o a_o synod_n at_o lateran_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1215._o then_o also_o come_v in_o the_o necessity_n of_o auricular_a confession_n the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n be_v bring_v in_o first_o by_o the_o synod_n at_o constance_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1414._o there_o also_o it_o be_v decree_v that_o the_o accident_n in_o the_o eucharist_n do_v subsist_v without_o a_o subject_n in_o the_o conventicle_n of_o florence_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1439._o the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n and_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n be_v decree_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o synod_n there_o also_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o 7._o sacrament_n be_v first_o propound_v to_o the_o armenian_n as_o proceed_v from_o the_o synod_n neither_o do_v we_o read_v of_o the_o form_n of_o extreme_a unction_n and_o other_o popish_a sacrament_n there_o set_v down_o before_o this_o time_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o error_n and_o superstition_n of_o popery_n be_v establish_v and_o confirm_v in_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1564._o for_o before_o that_o time_n the_o schoolman_n dispute_v pro_fw-la and_o contra_fw-la but_o since_o that_o they_o have_v make_v it_o unlawful_a to_o hold_v otherwise_o than_o that_o synod_n prescribe_v in_o matter_n there_o new_o determine_v now_o they_o have_v as_o it_o be_v give_v a_o perfect_a form_n and_o full_a authority_n to_o that_o doctrine_n which_o before_o be_v not_o either_o perfect_o know_v of_o all_o or_o in_o all_o point_n allow_v of_o all_o so_o that_o whatsoever_o the_o papist_n vant_n of_o the_o antiquity_n of_o their_o doctrine_n yet_o it_o be_v most_o evident_a that_o the_o full_a establishment_n of_o it_o as_o it_o be_v now_o deliver_v can_v be_v prove_v or_o show_v before_o this_o conventicle_n than_o their_o missal_n breviaries_n and_o office_n receive_v a_o great_a alteration_n or_o rather_o a_o new_a form_n than_o they_o innovate_v diverse_a point_n of_o doctrine_n both_o concern_v faith_n and_o manner_n to_o relate_v all_o the_o particular_a error_n and_o abuse_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v a_o matter_n infinite_a for_o there_o be_v no_o point_n almost_o wherein_o the_o papist_n vary_v not_o from_o the_o ancient_a church_n the_o article_n concern_v the_o holy_a trinity_n except_v beside_o that_o they_o vary_v in_o their_o doctrine_n and_o practice_v daily_a but_o the_o principal_a point_n of_o popery_n wherein_o we_o charge_v they_o to_o have_v digress_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o primitive_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v these_o first_o they_o have_v teach_v novelty_n and_o false_a doctrine_n concern_v the_o very_a ground_n of_o faith_n the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o that_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n but_o they_o believe_v the_o church_n to_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o pope_n irenaeus_n lib._n 3._o c._n 1._o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n do_v first_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o afterward_o deliver_v the_o same_o in_o scripture_n that_o they_o may_v be_v a_o
&_o sereno_fw-la vultu_fw-la respicer●_n digneris_fw-la etc._n etc._n upon_o which_o vouchsafe_v say_v the_o priest_n speak_v of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n to_o look_v with_o a_o propitious_a and_o serene_a countenance_n but_o true_a catholic_n do_v hope_n that_o god_n will_v look_v upon_o they_o favourable_o for_o the_o sacrifice_n once_o offer_v on_o the_o cross_n by_o their_o lord_n and_o saviour_n christ_n jesus_n 38._o they_o compare_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n body_n &_o blood_n in_o the_o mass_n with_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o abel_n that_o offer_v brute_n beast_n which_o not_o catholic_a ever_o do_v 39_o they_o make_v god_n a_o intercessor_n to_o saint_n pray_v to_o he_o that_o by_o the_o intercession_n of_o saint_n they_o may_v obtain_v their_o desire_n and_o say_v that_o god_n revele_v our_o thought_n to_o saint_n which_o be_v far_o from_o the_o doctrine_n and_o belief_n of_o catholic_n 4._o true_a catholic_n never_o add_v these_o word_n &_o aterni_fw-la and_o mysterium_fw-la sidei_fw-la to_o the_o word_n use_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o cup_n as_o the_o papist_n do_v in_o the_o mass_n 41._o true_a catholic_n believe_v that_o christ_n be_v once_o only_o offer_v to_o his_o father_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n the_o apostle_n hebr._n 9_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v once_o offer_v to_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o many_o but_o the_o papist_n say_v that_o christ_n offer_v himself_o twice_o and_o that_o every_o priest_n do_v offer_v he_o up_o and_o cat_n he_o up_o continual_o in_o the_o mass_n 42._o true_a catholic_n never_o confess_v their_o sin_n in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n to_o the_o virgin_n mary_n to_o michael_n the_o archangel_n and_o to_o other_o angel_n and_o saint_n let_v kellison_n but_o name_n we_o one_o catholic_a father_n that_o make_v such_o a_o confession_n or_o else_o we_o must_v needs_o conclude_v that_o he_o and_o his_o consort_n be_v idolatrous_a masspriest_n 43._o true_a catholic_n never_o believe_v that_o they_o can_v do_v penance_n by_o a_o procurato_fw-la or_o attorney_n as_o the_o papist_n believe_v they_o may_v 44._o neither_o do_v they_o ever_o believe_v that_o no_o christian_n can_v be_v absolve_v from_o their_o sin_n without_o auricular_a confession_n and_o the_o priest_n absolution_n as_o the_o false_a romish_a catholic_n do_v 45._o the_o false_a catholic_n believe_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o successor_n of_o peter_n but_o true_a catholic_n never_o believe_v or_o think_v they_o to_o be_v successor_n of_o that_o holy_a apostle_n that_o neither_o teach_v nor_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n and_o in_o lieu_n of_o feed_v cause_n christ_n sheep_n to_o be_v massacre_v and_o kill_v 46._o true_a catholic_n be_v often_o persecute_v but_o persecute_v none_o optatus_n lib._n 2._o contr_n parmen_fw-la speak_v of_o himself_o and_o his_o fellow_n catholic_n which_o of_o we_o say_v he_o have_v persecute_v any_o man_n but_o the_o papist_n like_o cruel_a wolf_n persecute_v all_o that_o be_v not_o of_o their_o own_o opinion_n 47._o catholic_n keep_v their_o word_n and_o perform_v thehir_o promise_n yea_o though_o it_o be_v to_o their_o hindrance_n papist_n teach_v that_o faith_n be_v not_o to_o be_v keep_v with_o heretic_n and_o burn_v john_n husse_v in_o the_o conventicle_n of_o constance_n contrary_a to_o the_o emperor_n safe_a conduct_n and_o faithful_a promise_n 48._o in_o the_o 13._o session_n of_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n the_o masspriest_n curse_v all_o that_o shall_v affirm_v that_o the_o principal_a fruit_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v remission_n of_o sin_n which_o fall_v upon_o all_o catholic_n that_o shall_v believe_v christ_n word_n matth._n 26._o this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o many_o for_o remission_n of_o sin_n 49._o christ_n teach_v true_a catholic_n to_o pray_v to_o the_o father_n in_o his_o name_n neither_o ever_o do_v we_o read_v that_o true_a catholic_n do_v pray_v thus_o ave_fw-la maris_fw-la stella_fw-la dei_fw-la mater_fw-la alma_fw-la atque_fw-la semper_fw-la virgo_fw-la foelix_fw-la coeli_fw-la porta_fw-la solve_v vincula_fw-la eris_fw-la proffer_n lumen_fw-la caecis_fw-la or_o that_o they_o hope_v to_o come_v to_o heaven_n or_o to_o have_v remission_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o virgin_n maries_fw-fr prayer_n and_o intercession_n 50._o true_a catholic_n never_o say_v to_o a_o crucifix_n of_o wood_n thou_o have_v redeem_v we_o thou_o have_v reconcile_v we_o to_o thy_o father_n nor_o do_v they_o pray_v to_o the_o cross_n as_o the_o papist_n do_v say_v o_o cross_n of_o christ_n protect●m●_n nay_o ambrose_n de_fw-fr obitu_fw-la theodosij_n show_v that_o helen_n find_v the_o cross_n do_v not_o worship_v it_o but_o christ_n that_o hang_v upon_o the_o cross_n 51._o true_a catholic_n never_o consecrate_v any_o paschal_n lamb_n as_o the_o masspriest_n be_v prescribe_v to_o do_v in_o their_o missal_n 52._o true_a catholic_n never_o say_v any_o psalter_n in_o the_o honour_n of_o our_o lady_n nor_o repeat_v a_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o have_v maries_n and_o after_o every_o fifty_o have_v maries_fw-fr one_o creed_n and_o after_o every_o ten_o aue_fw-la maries_n one_o paternoster_n as_o he_o papist_n do_v after_o the_o prescription_n of_o their_o lady_n psalter_n and_o rosary_n 53._o never_o do_v true_a catholic_n devise_v new_a religion_n nor_o allow_v the_o swarm_n and_o sect_n of_o jebusite_n franciscan_n dominican_n and_o the_o filthy_a rabble_n of_o friar_n which_o we_o see_v in_o the_o romish_a church_n final_o all_o those_o devise_n trick_n foolery_n novelty_n and_o impiety_n of_o popery_n which_o we_o refuse_v be_v never_o admit_v by_o true_a catholic_n or_o allow_v in_o the_o practice_n of_o catholic_a religion_n chap._n xvi_o that_o popish_a religion_n be_v not_o the_o ancient_a religion_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n id_fw-la verius_fw-la quod_fw-la prius_fw-la say_v tertullian_n lib._n 4._o contra_fw-la marcionem_fw-la that_o be_v true_a that_o be_v former_a and_o that_o be_v former_a that_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n and_o that_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n that_o come_v from_o the_o apostle_n hierome_n also_o epist_n 65._o ad_fw-la pammach_n &_o ocean_n say_v to_o a_o certain_a new_o upstart_v teacher_n in_o his_o time_n cur_n proffer_v in_o medium_n quod_fw-la petrus_n &_o paulus_n edere_fw-la noluerunt_fw-la why_o do_v thou_o now_o bring_v forth_o that_o which_o neither_o peter_n nor_o paul_n will_v ever_o teach_v if_o then_o popish_a religion_n be_v that_o ancient_a religion_n which_o the_o apostle_n first_o publish_v then_o have_v the_o papist_n cause_n to_o rejoice_v but_o if_o popery_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o cockle_n that_o have_v be_v by_o heretic_n and_o other_o the_o devil_n minister_n sow_v in_o the_o lord_n field_n since_o the_o first_o plantation_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o if_o the_o principal_a point_n thereof_o prove_v new_a devise_n bring_v in_o by_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o complice_n many_o age_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n than_o i_o hope_v every_o christian_n will_v reject_v the_o same_o as_o novelty_n and_o papist_n hereafter_o will_v blush_v to_o talk_v of_o antiquity_n that_o popish_a religion_n be_v not_o the_o ancient_a religion_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n it_o may_v be_v prove_v first_o by_o the_o ground_n of_o popery_n that_o be_v of_o a_o late_a stand_n next_o by_o the_o founder_n and_o cheese_n author_n of_o this_o sect_n that_o be_v not_o ancient_a three_o by_o the_o particular_a point_n of_o popery_n who_o original_a be_v find_v in_o late_a author_n and_o last_o by_o the_o repugnance_n betwixt_o the_o doctrine_n of_o popery_n and_o christian_a religion_n the_o principal_a ground_n of_o popery_n be_v the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la the_o act_n of_o certain_a late_a counsel_n the_o dispute_v of_o schoolman_n and_o gloss_n and_o commentary_n of_o the_o pope_n canonist_n and_o proctor_n but_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la have_v no_o authority_n of_o law_n before_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n the_o nine_o who_o first_o publish_v they_o and_o authorize_v they_o before_o his_o time_n gratian_n and_o other_o have_v make_v diverse_a rhapsody_n and_o collection_n of_o the_o pope_n decree_n but_o the_o canoniste_n themselves_o do_v not_o allow_v they_o for_o law_n beside_o that_o not_o one_o of_o the_o pope_n before_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n the_o 7._o who_o be_v the_o first_o that_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o give_v law_n to_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o who_o epistle_n be_v first_o record_v in_o the_o great_a bullary_n take_v upon_o he_o to_o publish_v his_o decretales_fw-la for_o law_n if_o any_o decretales_fw-la be_v set_v out_o before_o his_o time_n under_o the_o name_n of_o ancient_a bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o stile_n argument_n simplicity_n and_o foolery_n contain_v in_o they_o bewray_v they_o to_o be_v counterfeit_a the_o pope_n authority_n begin_v to_o flourish_v about_o the_o time_n of_o boniface_n the_o 3._o who_o as_o
primitive_a church_n holy_a scripture_n be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n and_o take_v only_o for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o now_o in_o the_o romish_a church_n lie_v legend_n and_o fable_n be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n and_o lie_v and_o uncertain_a tradition_n be_v make_v equal_a to_o scripture_n in_o time_n past_o it_o be_v account_v folly_n to_o read_v scripture_n in_o tongue_n unknowen_a and_o the_o apostle_n show_v that_o it_o be_v unprofitable_a to_o pray_v in_o a_o strange_a language_n but_o now_o the_o romanist_n both_o read_v scripture_n and_o pray_v in_o language_n not_o understand_v of_o the_o multitude_n and_o yet_o defend_v it_o as_o well_o do_v in_o ancient_a time_n no_o man_n ever_o believe_v either_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v make_v to_o we_o authentical_a by_o the_o pope_n determination_n or_o that_o the_o pope_n determination_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v certain_a now_o all_o be_v turn_v upside_o down_o scripture_n be_v make_v uncerteine_a and_o obscure_a and_o the_o pope_n determination_n be_v make_v most_o liquid_a and_o certain_a the_o ancient_a bishop_n of_o the_o church_n preach_v diligent_o live_v upright_o deal_v with_o their_o people_n merciful_o now_o the_o popish_a bishop_n preach_v not_o nor_o lead_v their_o life_n according_a to_o their_o profession_n but_o contrariwise_o live_v scandalous_o and_o be_v the_o only_a boucher_n to_o murder_v all_o that_o shall_v either_o reprehend_v the_o abuse_n of_o the_o church_n or_o their_o corruption_n in_o manner_n and_o the_o powderman_n and_o undermine_v papist_n follow_v their_o step_n ancient_a christian_n suffer_v most_o cruel_a torment_n and_o death_n because_o they_o will_v not_o worship_v image_n now_o the_o romanist_n put_v all_o to_o death_n that_o will_v not_o worship_v image_n the_o ancient_a roman_n according_a to_o s._n paul_n doctrine_n believe_v not_o to_o be_v instify_v by_o the_o work_n of_o god_n law_n the_o late_a romanistes_n hope_v to_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o pope_n law_n they_o look_v for_o no_o peace_n by_o their_o own_o satisfaction_n but_o by_o the_o redemption_n wrought_v by_o christ_n jesus_n these_o modern_a fellow_n believe_v that_o they_o can_v satisfy_v for_o their_o own_o sin_n and_o trust_v in_o the_o redemption_n procure_v they_o by_o the_o pope_n indulgence_n the_o roman_n unto_o who_o s._n paul_n write_v be_v obedient_a to_o king_n these_o loose_a the_o bond_n between_o king_n and_o their_o subject_n and_o stir_v up_o traitor_n to_o blow_v up_o their_o prince_n they_o diligent_o observe_v christ_n institution_n in_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n and_o neither_o spit_n in_o the_o face_n of_o christian_n baptize_v nor_o steal_v away_o the_o cup_n from_o the_o communicant_n the_o modern_a romish_a priest_n spit_v on_o those_o who_o they_o baptize_v and_o refuse_v to_o administer_v the_o cup_n to_o other_o than_o themselves_o final_o they_o be_v digress_v from_o the_o ancient_a roman_n in_o all_o those_o particular_n both_o concern_v faith_n and_o manner_n wherein_o i_o have_v show_v that_o they_o differ_v from_o ancient_a catholic_n and_o have_v devise_v mere_a novelty_n chap._n li._n that_o the_o romish_a church_n that_o now_o be_v be_v invisible_a in_o old_a time_n much_o do_v our_o adversary_n boast_v of_o the_o visibility_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n suppose_v because_o the_o scripture_n speak_v much_o of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o all_o that_o honour_n belong_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n of_o late_a time_n but_o while_o they_o mistake_v thing_n spiritual_a for_o thing_n corporal_a and_o external_a and_o suppose_v thing_n untrue_a all_o this_o their_o boast_n and_o glory_n will_v turn_v to_o their_o great_a prejudice_n and_o shame_n for_o first_o the_o beauty_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v rather_o in_o inward_a virtue_n then_o in_o outward_a show_n and_o apparel_n second_o be_v it_o that_o the_o church_n be_v always_o see_v and_o apparent_a to_o the_o true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o the_o modern_a romish_a church_n and_o the_o glory_n thereof_o be_v never_o see_v either_o of_o the_o apostle_n or_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o church_n or_o of_o ancient_a christian_n for_o what_o i_o pray_v you_o be_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o a_o multitude_n of_o people_n profess_v the_o modern_a say_v of_o the_o romish_a synagogue_n &_o communicate_v with_o the_o same_o in_o sacrament_n and_o subiect_v themselves_o to_o the_o pope_n holiness_n this_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o bellarmine_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr ecclesia_fw-la and_o of_o canisius_n in_o his_o catechism_n c._n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la &_o symbolo_fw-la and_o i_o hope_v will_v not_o be_v deny_v by_o any_o papist_n but_o such_o a_o church_n shall_v never_o be_v show_v in_o ancient_a time_n and_o that_o we_o shall_v prove_v by_o invincible_a reason_n for_o first_o we_o find_v not_o during_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n any_o such_o head_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o pope_n nor_o any_o such_o shoulder_n as_o the_o cardinal_n nor_o any_o such_o rot_a member_n as_o the_o chantery_n priest_n sing_v mass_n for_o soul_n depart_v as_o monk_n live_v in_o herd_n like_o swine_n as_o friar_n beg_v for_o fashion_n sake_n and_o yet_o abound_v in_o all_o thing_n necessary_a 2._o the_o pope_n with_o his_o triple_a crown_n two_o sword_n cross_v pantofle_n and_o his_o guard_n of_o suizar_n and_o purple_a cardinal_n follow_v he_o begin_v only_o of_o late_a time_n to_o be_v visible_a if_o such_o a_o sight_n have_v appear_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n they_o will_v have_v wonder_v at_o it_o as_o a_o thing_n most_o monstrous_a and_o unbeseeming_a he_o that_o pretend_v to_o be_v the_o successor_n of_o peter_n 3._o while_n s._n peter_n live_v no_o man_n ever_o see_v a_o church_n persecute_v of_o christ_n disciple_n and_o deliver_v they_o over_o to_o have_v their_o throat_n cut_v by_o the_o secular_a power_n nor_o do_v either_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o the_o ancient_a father_n for_o more_o than_o a_o thousand_o year_n after_o christ_n imprison_v torment_n or_o kill_v such_o christian_n as_o be_v not_o of_o their_o faction_n and_o opinion_n 4._o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o christ_n do_v neither_o excommunicate_a king_n nor_o assoil_v their_o subject_n from_o their_o obedience_n command_v they_o upon_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n to_o rise_v up_o in_o arm_n against_o they_o and_o to_o depose_v they_o the_o romish_a church_n therefore_o which_o do_v all_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o then_o visible_a neither_o can_v any_o mass-priest_n show_v we_o where_o in_o old_a time_n miner_n and_o powder-man_n seek_v to_o blow_v up_o the_o principal_a man_n of_o the_o state_n 5._o so_o long_o as_o the_o primitive_a church_n continue_v in_o the_o doctrine_n and_o step_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o ancient_a father_n the_o same_o be_v rule_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o canon_n of_o counsel_n and_o then_o the_o decretales_fw-la of_o gregory_n the_o 9_o boniface_n the_o 8._o clement_n the_o 5._o john_n the_o 22._o and_o other_o late_a pope_n be_v not_o in_o the_o world_n who_o can_v then_o say_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n order_v by_o these_o decretales_fw-la be_v then_o visible_a 6._o the_o moderno_fw-la romish_a church_n beside_o the_o two_o sacrament_n institute_v by_o christ_n believe_v other_o 5._o sacrament_n and_o hope_v as_o well_o to_o be_v save_v by_o grease_v when_o they_o lie_v a_o die_a as_o by_o baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n but_o such_o a_o church_n be_v altogether_o invisible_a both_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o long_o after_o 7._o now_o papist_n believe_v that_o christian_n receive_v the_o sacrament_n swallow_v down_o christ_n body_n into_o their_o stomach_n nay_o they_o teach_v that_o dog_n hog_n and_o brute_n beast_n eat_v consecrate_v host_n do_v also_o devour_v christ_n body_n but_o such_o a_o company_n of_o cannibal_n and_o blasphemer_n against_o christian_a religion_n be_v never_o take_v for_o christ_n church_n for_o more_o than_o a_o thousand_o year_n after_o christ_n 8._o the_o roman_a church_n command_v christian_n to_o keep_v the_o feast_n day_n of_o monk_n and_o friar_n and_o other_o saint_n to_o hear_v mass_n upon_o ember_n day_n in_o lent_n and_o friday_n to_o abstain_v from_o flesh_n to_o go_v to_o auricular_a confession_n at_o the_o least_o once_o a_o year_n and_o not_o to_o celebrate_v marriage_n upon_o certain_a day_n but_o if_o all_o the_o monk_n and_o friar_n in_o the_o world_n be_v set_v to_o seek_v such_o a_o church_n and_o if_o the_o masspriest_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v join_v with_o they_o yet_o can_v they_o not_o find_v such_o a_o church_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n after_o christ_n 9_o in_o the_o romish_a missal_n the_o priest_n pray_v that_o god_n will_v be_v please_v to_o accept_v of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n
rest_n also_o may_v revoke_v their_o error_n see_v their_o deformity_n return_v with_o a_o sincere_a heart_n to_o god_n true_a church_n and_o so_o be_v save_v chap._n lv._o a_o brief_a recapitulation_n of_o the_o principal_a point_n of_o the_o former_a discourse_n and_o a_o exhortation_n both_o to_o papist_n and_o true_a christian_n thus_o we_o see_v and_o i_o pray_v god_n all_o christian_n may_v diligent_o consider_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o popish_a religion_n brief_o it_o be_v a_o collection_n of_o diverse_a corruption_n and_o error_n maintain_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o adherent_n either_o contrary_a or_o above_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n this_o religion_n we_o have_v show_v to_o have_v be_v build_v upon_o weak_a uncerteine_a and_o false_a foundation_n and_o aver_v that_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n law_n and_o of_o true_a faith_n and_o justification_n through_o christ_n the_o same_o also_o teach_v erroneous_o of_o the_o gospel_n and_o diminish_v the_o merit_n of_o christ_n our_o mediator_n and_o redeemer_n further_o it_o have_v corrupt_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o bring_v in_o many_o old_a and_o new_a heresy_n it_o be_v compact_v of_o diverse_a impiety_n blasphemy_n and_o idolatry_n and_o never_o come_v from_o jerusalem_n it_o be_v never_o teach_v by_o the_o prophet_n or_o apostle_n nor_o profess_v by_o ancient_a christian_a king_n it_o be_v not_o that_o religion_n to_o which_o the_o ancient_a britan_n and_o english_a be_v convert_v nor_o do_v it_o deserve_v to_o be_v call_v catholic_a or_o ancient_a it_o be_v find_v to_o be_v repugnant_a to_o ancient_a counsel_n and_o to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n it_o be_v a_o religion_n diverse_a from_o that_o of_o the_o ancient_a martyr_n of_o christ_n jesus_n a_o religion_n devise_v by_o man_n and_o not_o derive_v out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n a_o religion_n who_o founder_n &_o defender_n do_v wicked_o wrest_v and_o abuse_v scriprure_n father_n and_o other_o writer_n a_o religion_n consist_v of_o heathenish_a and_o jewish_a observance_n a_o religion_n full_a of_o contradiction_n and_o contrariety_n a_o religion_n stein_v with_o many_o foolery_n and_o absurdity_n a_o religion_n keep_v christian_n in_o ignorance_n of_o true_a piety_n and_o lose_v the_o reins_n to_o all_o voluptuousness_n and_o disorder_n a_o religion_n devoid_a of_o good_a work_n and_o piety_n a_o religion_n that_o make_v a_o base_a account_n of_o god_n people_n and_o teach_v doctrine_n of_o devil_n a_o religion_n of_o who_o ground_n and_o doctrine_n the_o professor_n thereof_o have_v no_o assurance_n a_o religion_n repugnant_a to_o law_n of_o nation_n of_o kindred_n alliance_n and_o common_a civility_n a_o religion_n prejudicial_a to_o the_o authority_n of_o king_n and_o dangerous_a in_o regard_n of_o their_o state_n and_o person_n a_o religion_n that_o lay_v grievous_a burden_n on_o man_n conscience_n and_o eat_v up_o christian_n through_o manifold_a exaction_n a_o religion_n without_o true_a bishop_n and_o priest_n and_o whole_o maintain_v by_o false_a allegation_n forgery_n calumniation_n lie_n fire_n and_o sword_n perjury_n and_o breach_n of_o covenant_n a_o religion_n who_o chief_a founder_n and_o maintainer_n have_v be_v common_o note_v for_o wicked_a and_o profane_a man_n a_o religion_n more_o absurd_a in_o diverse_a point_n and_o that_o oppress_v christian_n more_o greevous_o than_o mahometry_n a_o religion_n by_o who_o practice_n the_o empire_n of_o christian_n be_v decay_v &_o the_o power_n of_o the_o turk_n enlarge_v a_o religion_n profess_v by_o degenerate_v roman_n neither_o for_o faith_n nor_o life_n comparable_a to_o their_o ancestor_n and_o by_o a_o church_n that_o be_v never_o visible_a until_o of_o late_a time_n nor_o can_v show_v better_a mark_n or_o bring_v better_a motive_n to_o induce_v man_n to_o embrace_v her_o doctrine_n than_o the_o turk_n and_o paynim_n to_o conclude_v a_o religion_n who_o professor_n can_v neither_o be_v esteem_v true_a subject_n nor_o true_a christian_n nor_o justly_o pretend_v either_o assurance_n or_o hope_v of_o their_o salvation_n i_o do_v therefore_o exhort_v all_o true_a christian_n as_o they_o desire_v either_o that_o the_o true_a faith_n of_o christ_n jesus_n may_v be_v public_o receive_v or_o that_o doctrine_n contrary_a to_o piety_n christian_a charity_n policy_n reason_n and_o common_a humanity_n may_v be_v suppress_v to_o beware_v of_o the_o levain_n of_o popery_n &_o to_o concur_v with_o those_o which_o both_o teach_v and_o set_v forward_o the_o true_a catholic_a faith_n according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n and_o which_o seek_v to_o resist_v all_o corruption_n false_a doctrine_n sect_n and_o heresy_n and_o to_o root_v up_o the_o seed_n of_o all_o treachery_n and_o rebellion_n on_o the_o other_o side_n i_o beseech_v all_o papist_n to_o cast_v away_o all_o prejudice_n and_o passion_n and_o diligent_o to_o consider_v of_o the_o premise_n that_o as_o they_o profess_v themselves_o true_a subject_n &_o well_o affect_v to_o catholic_a &_o the_o ancient_a religion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n so_o they_o may_v abhor_v their_o former_a treason_n and_o rebellious_a detest_v the_o masspriest_n and_o powder-man_n their_o consort_n reject_v all_o heresy_n error_n and_o false_a doctrine_n mask_v with_o glorious_a title_n of_o universality_n and_o antiquity_n and_o set_v forth_o by_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o complice_n teach_v a_o late_a particular_a faith_n and_o final_o endeavour_n to_o be_v gather_v together_o into_o that_o society_n whereof_o christ_n be_v the_o head_n and_o without_o which_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n the_o god_n of_o all_o truth_n confirm_v and_o establish_v all_o true_a christian_n in_o truth_n and_o discover_v all_o treachery_n and_o error_n that_o such_o as_o now_o be_v disloial_o mind_v and_o wander_v astray_o may_v acknowledge_v their_o former_a disloialty_n and_o error_n and_o embrace_v the_o true_a catholic_a faith_n and_o that_o such_o as_o stand_v may_v be_v confirm_v in_o the_o truth_n that_o so_o both_o they_o and_o we_o joint_o may_v live_v loyal_o under_o our_o prince_n and_o true_o serve_v one_o true_a and_o everliving_a god_n and_o glorify_v his_o holy_a name_n through_o christ_n our_o lord_n to_o who_o together_o with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n three_o person_n and_o one_o god_n we_o render_v all_o praise_n and_o honour_n now_o and_o for_o ever_o a_o brief_a note_n of_o the_o content_n of_o every_o chapter_n of_o the_o former_a discourse_n chap._n 1._o what_o be_v mean_v by_o popery_n or_o popish_a religion_n in_o this_o whole_a treatise_n chap._n 2._o of_o the_o ground_n and_o foundation_n of_o popish_a religion_n chap._n 3._o of_o the_o wicked_a doctrine_n of_o papist_n concern_v the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o the_o performance_n thereof_o chap._n 4._o of_o the_o damnable_a doctrine_n of_o papist_n concern_v faith_n and_o justification_n chap._n 5._o what_o papist_n do_v mean_a speak_v of_o the_o gospel_n chap._n 6._o of_o the_o impious_a doctrine_n of_o papist_n concern_v christ_n our_o saviour_n chap._n 7._o the_o strange_a contradictory_n and_o false_a opinion_n of_o papist_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n chap._n 8._o that_o popery_n be_v a_o mixture_n of_o old_a and_o new_a heresy_n chap._n 9_o a_o catalogue_n of_o diverse_a notorious_a impiety_n and_o blasphemy_n contain_v not_o only_o in_o popish_a book_n but_o also_o in_o the_o corpse_n of_o popish_a religion_n chap._n 10._o that_o popery_n be_v a_o sink_n of_o heathenish_a idolatry_n chap._n 11._o that_o popish_a religion_n never_o come_v from_o jerusalem_n chap._n 12._o that_o popish_a religion_n be_v never_o teach_v either_o by_o the_o old_a prophet_n or_o by_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n jesus_n chap._n 13._o that_o popery_n be_v either_o condemn_v or_o not_o know_v ●s_a by_o king_n profess_v christian_n religion_n in_o old_a time_n chap._n 14._o that_o the_o ancient_a britane_n and_o english_a be_v not_o first_o convert_v to_o popish_a religion_n chap._n 15._o that_o popish_a religion_n be_v most_o false_o term_v catholic_a religion_n and_o papist_n catholic_n chap._n 16._o that_o popish_a religion_n be_v not_o the_o ancient_a religion_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n chap._n 17._o that_o popery_n be_v repugnant_a to_o ancient_a counsel_n chap._n 18._o that_o popery_n be_v not_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o church_n chap._n 19_o that_o popish_a religion_n be_v never_o testify_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christian_a martyr_n chap._n 20._o that_o popery_n be_v a_o mere_a humane_a device_n and_o not_o in_o any_o sort_n to_o be_v deduce_v or_o prove_v out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n chap._n 21._o that_o popish_a religion_n in_o diverse_a point_n be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o holy_a scripture_n chap._n 22._o that_o the_o founder_n and_o desender_v of_o popery_n do_v most_o wicked_o abuse_v holy_a scripture_n chap._n 23._o that_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o principal_a proctor_n of_o his_o cause_n be_v great_a forger_n and_o falsifier_n of_o father_n profane_a writer_n and_o of_o public_a record_n chap._n 24._o that_o popery_n stand_v much_o upon_o heathenish_a observance_n and_o custom_n chap._n 25._o that_o popery_n borrow_v also_o diverse_a fashion_n from_o the_o jew_n chap._n 26._o that_o popish_a religion_n be_v full_a of_o contradiction_n and_o contrary_a opinion_n chap._n 27._o that_o popery_n be_v a_o most_o absurd_a and_o foolish_a religion_n chap._n 28._o that_o popery_n keep_v christian_n in_o blindness_n and_o ignorance_n of_o god_n and_o godliness_n chap._n 29._o that_o popish_a religion_n give_v the_o reins_n to_o licentiousness_n of_o life_n &_o lead_v christian_n the_o broad_a way_n to_o destruction_n chap._n 30._o that_o popish_a religion_n bring_v forth_o such_o bitter_a fruit_n that_o the_o professor_n thereof_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o boast_v of_o their_o work_n chap._n 31._o that_o in_o popery_n a_o base_a account_n be_v make_v of_o prince_n and_o all_o lay-man_n chap._n 32._o that_o popery_n be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n chap._n 33._o that_o papist_n can_v have_v no_o assurance_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o religion_n chap._n 34._o that_o popery_n be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o law_n of_o nation_n chap._n 35._o that_o popery_n dissolve_v the_o bond_n of_o kindred_n all_o 〈◊〉_d and_o civility_n chap._n 36._o that_o popish_a religion_n either_o disannul_v or_o great_o preiudice_v the_o authority_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n chap._n 37._o that_o king_n profess_v popish_a religion_n be_v either_o no_o king_n or_o but_o half_a king_n chap._n 38._o that_o king_n live_v not_o in_o any_o security_n of_o their_o line_n where_o popery_n be_v profess_v by_o their_o subject_n chap._n 39_o that_o popish_a religion_n lay_v grievous_a burden_n on_o man_n conscience_n chap._n 40._o that_o popish_a religion_n be_v very_o grievous_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o masspriest_n manfolde_v tax_n and_o exaction_n chap._n 41._o that_o the_o popish_a church_n have_v no_o true_a bishop_n nor_o priest_n chap._n 42._o that_o popery_n can_v be_v maintain_v without_o forgery_n and_o falsehood_n chap._n 43._o that_o popery_n can_v be_v well_o uphold_v without_o calummation_n and_o lie_n chap._n 44._o that_o the_o cause_n of_o popery_n be_v not_o maintain_v without_o fire_n and_o sword_n chap._n 45._o that_o the_o practice_n and_o treaty_n of_o pope_n and_o their_o complice_n with_o christian_n be_v not_o to_o be_v trust_v chap._n 46._o that_o the_o chief_a founder_n and_o maintainer_n of_o popery_n have_v be_v common_o note_v for_o wicked_a and_o profane_a man_n chap._n 47._o that_o popery_n in_o many_o point_n be_v more_o absurd_a and_o abominable_a than_o the_o doctrine_n of_o mahomet_n chap._n 48._o that_o christian_n be_v less_o oppress_v under_o the_o turk_n then_o under_o the_o pope_n chap._n 49._o that_o the_o ambition_n covetousness_n contention_n &_o practice_n of_o pope_n be_v the_o principal_a cause_n of_o the_o decay_n of_o the_o christian_a empire_n and_o a_o great_a occasion_n of_o the_o good_a success_n of_o the_o turk_n chap._n 50._o that_o the_o modern_n church_n of_o rome_n be_v much_o degenerate_v from_o the_o faith_n and_o manner_n of_o the_o ancient_a roman_n chap._n 51._o that_o the_o romish_a church_n that_o now_o be_v be_v invisible_a in_o old_a time_n chap._n 52._o that_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n and_o motive_n to_o the_o modern_a romish_a faith_n allege_v by_o papist_n may_v as_o well_o be_v alle_fw-mi dge_v by_o turk_n and_o infidel_n chap._n 53._o that_o true_a papist_n can_v be_v true_a nor_o loyal_a subject_n chap._n 54._o that_o such_o papist_n as_o positive_o hold_v all_o the_o heretical_a and_o false_a doctrine_n of_o the_o mederne_a church_n of_o rome_n can_v possible_o be_v save_v chap._n 55._o a_o brief_a recapitulation_n of_o the_o principal_a point_n of_o the_o former_a discourse_n and_o be_v exhortation_n both_o to_o papist_n and_o true_a christian_n
survey_v of_o popery_n and_o to_o draw_v home_o this_o idle_a wander_a surveyor_n &_o searcher_n of_o other_o man_n matter_n to_o a_o careful_a consideration_n of_o his_o own_o desperate_a cause_n his_o treatise_n be_v most_o foolish_o title_v a_o survey_v of_o the_o new_a religion_n for_o neither_o shall_v he_o ever_o prove_v that_o one_o article_n of_o our_o religion_n be_v new_a nor_o do_v he_o dispute_v against_o any_o ground_n hold_v by_o we_o but_o only_o tell_v of_o certain_a extravagant_a speech_n partly_o false_o impute_v to_o luther_n caluin_n zuinglius_fw-la and_o other_o private_a man_n and_o partly_o false_o gather_v out_o of_o their_o word_n by_o false_a construction_n but_o have_v they_o hold_v any_o private_a opinion_n that_o just_o may_v be_v censure_v what_o be_v that_o to_o we_o our_o religion_n certes_o be_v not_o ground_v upon_o luther_n caluin_n or_o any_o late_a teacher_n but_o upon_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n neither_o be_v our_o faith_n that_o which_o be_v find_v in_o private_a man_n writing_n but_o that_o which_o be_v found_v upon_o holy_a scripture_n and_o contain_v in_o our_o public_a confession_n he_o may_v therefore_o with_o more_o reason_n have_v call_v it_o a_o surfeit_n of_o his_o own_o foolery_n and_o fantastical_a device_n and_o calumniation_n than_o a_o survey_n of_o our_o religion_n against_o this_o idle_a invention_n of_o kellison_n i_o have_v i_o hope_v oppose_v a_o more_o diligent_a and_o certain_a survey_n of_o popery_n for_o i_o have_v not_o devise_v any_o thing_n of_o my_o own_o but_o true_o report_v the_o doctrine_n which_o they_o teach_v and_o herein_o i_o do_v not_o object_v whatsoever_o be_v teach_v by_o scotus_n aquinas_n durandus_fw-la biel_n stapleton_n harding_n bellarmine_n or_o which_o other_o doctor_n do_v hold_v singuler_o nor_o that_o which_o sanders_n parson_n or_o such_o idle_a fellow_n babble_n in_o their_o trifle_a book_n but_o only_o that_o which_o be_v either_o define_v in_o some_o council_n or_o determine_v by_o some_o pope_n or_o general_o teach_v or_o practise_v by_o all_o or_o most_o or_o best_a of_o our_o adversary_n and_o which_o i_o think_v kellison_n will_v not_o deny_v and_o by_o these_o ground_n doctrine_n and_o practice_n i_o hope_v to_o overthrow_v the_o whole_a frame_n and_o build_n of_o popery_n be_v lay_v upon_o weak_a ground_n and_o consist_v of_o many_o wicked_a and_o false_a doctrine_n and_o be_v maintain_v by_o most_o lewd_a and_o wicked_a mean_n and_o practice_n this_o discourse_n i_o first_o devise_v for_o a_o private_a friend_n who_o waver_v for_o i_o will_v not_o say_v defection_n until_o i_o see_v surther_n i_o do_v much_o lament_v and_o who_o settlement_n i_o do_v much_o desire_n but_o because_o i_o do_v think_v the_o same_o may_v do_v good_a to_o many_o who_o not_o know_v the_o truth_n we_o hold_v nor_o the_o error_n heresy_n superstition_n idolatry_n and_o impiety_n of_o popery_n do_v run_v headlong_o upon_o occasion_n either_o of_o malcontentment_n or_o desire_v of_o innovation_n in_o matter_n of_o state_n which_o they_o consider_v may_v soon_o be_v stir_v by_o quarrel_n about_o religion_n into_o strange_a course_n i_o have_v be_v persuade_v to_o make_v it_o common_a the_o same_o also_o may_v serve_v to_o reclaim_v the_o most_o haggard_a papist_n if_o they_o do_v not_o wilful_o shut_v their_o eye_n and_o stop_v their_o ear_n against_o the_o truth_n three_o this_o may_v serve_v to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o slanderous_a jebusite_n and_o masspriest_n that_o impute_v to_o we_o wicked_a opinion_n and_o practice_n no_o way_n defend_v be_v unable_a to_o defend_v their_o own_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n which_o they_o public_o profess_v and_o commend_v sinal_o i_o hope_v wise_a christian_n may_v learn_v by_o these_o collection_n of_o we_o neither_o to_o trust_v the_o adversary_n who_o make_v no_o conscience_n of_o lie_v or_o slander_v nor_o to_o condemn_v innocent_a man_n before_o they_o be_v hear_v and_o convict_v vouchsafe_v therefore_o gentle_a reader_n to_o read_v our_o discourse_n with_o attention_n and_o to_o judge_v without_o partiality_n and_o then_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o thou_o will_v beware_v both_o of_o the_o impious_a doctrine_n and_o of_o the_o injurious_a and_o lewd_a practice_n of_o popery_n if_o any_o be_v offend_v with_o this_o survey_a course_n let_v he_o impute_v the_o fault_n to_o kellison_n who_o of_o a_o drunken_a butler_n be_v now_o become_v a_o mad_a surveyor_n and_o if_o he_o find_v not_o text_n or_o proof_n sufficient_a to_o satisfy_v his_o humour_n in_o proof_n of_o every_o allegation_n in_o this_o treatise_n let_v he_o think_v that_o the_o matter_n be_v of_o that_o nature_n that_o either_o they_o will_v be_v confess_v of_o the_o adversary_n or_o else_o be_v notorious_o know_v to_o the_o world_n though_o impudent_o deny_v by_o the_o polshorne_a pack_n of_o antichrist_n final_o as_o there_o be_v but_o one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n one_o god_n so_o there_o be_v but_o one_o true_a religion_n which_o every_o one_o be_v to_o know_v and_o to_o embrace_v if_o he_o will_v be_v save_v and_o this_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n but_o as_o athanasius_n orat_fw-la 2_o contr_n arianos_n say_v of_o the_o arian_n pro_fw-la christo_fw-la apud_fw-la illos_fw-la arius_n est_fw-la that_o be_v they_o follow_v arius_n as_o if_o he_o be_v christ_n so_o we_o may_v say_v of_o the_o papist_n the_o pope_n be_v their_o christ_n their_o head_n their_o lodestarre_n their_o northpole_n and_o all_o in_o all_o this_o one_o true_a religion_n be_v also_o apostolic_a and_o catholic_a and_o most_o ancient_a tertullian_n lib._n 1._o contr_n marcionem_fw-la teach_v we_o whatsoever_o doctrine_n have_v be_v bring_v into_o the_o church_n after_o the_o first_o publication_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o the_o same_o be_v to_o be_v repute_v heresy_n haeresis_fw-la deputabitur_fw-la say_v he_o quod_fw-la postea_fw-la inducitur_fw-la but_o popery_n never_o come_v from_o the_o apostle_n but_o from_o the_o pope_n neither_o be_v the_o same_o universal_o or_o ancient_o receive_v but_o only_o teach_v and_o embrace_v by_o the_o pope_n faction_n of_o late_a time_n and_o within_o certain_a limit_n final_o this_o true_a and_o apostolic_a religion_n be_v of_o god_n and_o not_o of_o the_o invention_n of_o pope_n or_o their_o polshorne_a priest_n monk_n or_o friar_n embrace_v therefore_o that_o religion_n that_o be_v derive_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n that_o be_v true_o catholic_a apostolic_a and_o most_o ancient_a and_o final_o which_o have_v no_o author_n but_o god_n and_o beware_v of_o all_o profane_a novelty_n and_o popish_a invention_n and_o then_o as_o thou_o walk_v by_o faith_n in_o this_o life_n so_o thou_o shall_v attain_v to_o the_o vision_n of_o the_o face_n of_o god_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v and_o also_o reign_v with_o god_n everlasting_o through_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o life_n the_o abridgement_n or_o survey_v of_o popery_n contain_v a_o brief_a and_o plain_a declaration_n of_o the_o ground_n doctrine_n beginning_n proceed_n impiety_n falsity_n and_o other_o manifold_a abuse_n of_o the_o popish_a sect_n chap._n i._n what_o be_v mean_v by_o popery_n or_o popish_a religion_n in_o this_o discourse_n ensue_v to_o teach_v aright_o say_v plato_n in_o cratylo_n we_o be_v diligent_o to_o expound_v the_o term_n or_o word_n we_o treat_v of_o and_o tully_n in_o his_o first_o book_n of_o office_n say_v that_o every_o instruction_n that_o be_v undertake_v right_o aught_o to_o begin_v with_o a_o desinition_n of_o matter_n which_o we_o be_v to_o discourse_v of_o because_o therefore_o i_o will_v not_o be_v mistake_v nor_o have_v our_o adversary_n to_o take_v either_o a_o occasion_n of_o quarrel_n or_o a_o pretence_n of_o evasion_n it_o shall_v be_v neeedfull_a before_o we_o pass_v any_o further_a to_o define_v and_o declare_v what_o we_o mean_v in_o this_o discourse_n by_o popery_n or_o popish_a religion_n and_o so_o much_o the_o rather_o for_o that_o the_o papist_n do_v hold_v and_o profess_v the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n and_o diverse_a other_o point_n deduce_v of_o they_o or_o consonant_n unto_o they_o which_o both_o the_o apostle_n and_o ancient_a father_n and_o we_o also_o believe_v and_o profess_v and_o under_o colour_n whereof_o they_o abuse_v simple_a soul_n recesue_v their_o puddle_n water_n of_o popery_n make_v sweet_a with_o some_o truth_n for_o the_o pure_a stream_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n by_o popery_n therefore_o we_o understand_v not_o any_o point_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n general_o hold_v of_o all_o christian_n or_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o prophet_n or_o holy_a apostle_n profess_v general_o by_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o true_o term_v catholic_a for_o that_o we_o hold_v and_o profess_v as_o well_o as_o the_o papist_n and_o far_o more_o
pretence_n do_v reject_v the_o old_a translation_n or_o use_v any_o interpretation_n contrary_a to_o the_o romish_a church_n meaning_n they_o condemn_v stapleton_n in_o his_o book_n entitle_v principia_fw-la doctrinalia_fw-la do_v deliver_v unto_o we_o seven_o ground_n or_o principle_n of_o his_o religion_n the_o first_o be_v the_o church_n the_o second_o the_o pope_n the_o three_o the_o mean_v use_v by_o the_o pope_n in_o judgement_n the_o four_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n in_o judgement_n the_o five_o his_o power_n in_o tax_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n the_o six_o his_o certain_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n the_o seven_o his_o power_n in_o deliver_v doctrine_n not_o write_v these_o i_o say_v be_v his_o ground_n and_o principle_n absurd_o devise_v confuse_o dispose_v and_o ridiculous_o propound_v as_o god_n willing_a shall_v be_v show_v otherwhere_o now_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o declare_v that_o whatsoever_o he_o bable_v elsewhere_o of_o scripture_n counsel_n &_o father_n yet_o here_o they_o be_v all_o suppress_v in_o this_o division_n or_o at_o the_o least_o conceal_v under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n or_o pope_n which_o in_o his_o preface_n to_o gregory_n the_o 13._o he_o call_v supremum_fw-la numen_fw-la in_o terris_fw-la that_o be_v the_o supreme_a god_n of_o the_o world_n and_o who_o to_o he_o be_v all_o in_o all_o likewise_o in_o his_o preface_n to_o his_o relection_n of_o doctrinal_a principle_n he_o seem_v direct_o to_o exclude_v the_o scripture_n christianae_n religionis_fw-la fundamentum_fw-la habemus_fw-la say_v he_o ab_fw-la ipsis_fw-la literis_fw-la apostolicis_fw-la &_o evangelicis_fw-la uliud_fw-la that_o be_v we_o have_v another_o foundation_n of_o christian_a religion_n diverse_a from_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n &_o prophet_n if_o he_o exclude_v not_o scripture_n yet_o he_o admit_v they_o not_o otherwise_o than_o according_a to_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o complice_n nay_o without_o the_o pope_n declaration_n he_o do_v tedious_o discourse_n that_o christian_n be_v not_o to_o receive_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n the_o decretale_a epistle_n of_o the_o pope_n no_o doubt_n they_o admit_v for_o the_o foundation_n of_o their_o faith_n for_o in_o the_o rubric_n of_o their_o decree_n c._n in_o canonicis_fw-la do_v 19_o they_o do_v determine_v that_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la be_v to_o be_v number_v among_o canonical_a scripture_n inter_fw-la canonicas_fw-la scripturas_fw-la say_v they_o decretales_fw-la epistolae_fw-la connumerantur_fw-la likewise_o gelasius_n c._n sancta_fw-la romana_fw-la do_v 15._o define_v that_o the_o pope_n decretale_a epistle_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v with_o veneration_n in_o the_o same_o decretale_a gelasius_n authorise_v the_o roman_a martyrologe_n or_o legend_n of_o martyr_n neither_o can_v kellison_n or_o his_o kettle_n companion_n deny_v this_o to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o ground_n of_o his_o rammish_a i_o will_v say_v romish_a religion_n see_v these_o martyrologe_n and_o legend_n contain_v diverse_a tradition_n which_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n will_v have_v all_o papist_n to_o receive_v with_o equal_a affection_n to_o scripture_n canus_n lib._n 1._o loc_fw-la theolog_fw-la c._n 1._o assign_v ten_o place_n out_o of_o which_o he_o say_v divine_n be_v to_o draw_v argument_n the_o first_o be_v the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n the_o second_o the_o authority_n of_o tradition_n not_o write_v the_o three_o be_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o four_o the_o authority_n of_o counsel_n the_o five_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n where_o we_o be_v to_o note_v that_o more_o honest_o than_o his_o companion_n he_o make_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o differ_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o six_o be_v the_o authority_n of_o ancient_a father_n the_o seven_o the_o authority_n of_o romish_a school_n doctor_n the_o eight_o natural_a reason_n the_o nine_o the_o authority_n of_o philosopher_n the_o ten_o the_o authority_n of_o writer_n of_o story_n so_o we_o see_v how_o he_o build_v his_o faith_n upon_o man_n as_o well_o as_o upon_o god_n and_o match_v tradition_n not_o write_v with_o the_o most_o divine_a writing_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n and_o conjoin_v the_o authority_n of_o counsel_n and_o father_n nay_o of_o schoolman_n and_o philosopher_n with_o the_o testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n frame_v to_o we_o rather_o a_o humane_a than_o a_o divine_a foundation_n of_o christian_a faith_n martin_n perez_n a_o plain_a deal_n papist_n know_n that_o all_o those_o point_n of_o doctrine_n which_o be_v in_o controversy_n betwixt_o his_o fellow_n and_o we_o be_v ground_v rather_o upon_o tradition_n then_o scripture_n do_v entitle_v his_o whole_a discourse_n of_o these_o matter_n de_fw-fr traditionibus_fw-la that_o be_v a_o discourse_n of_o tradition_n final_o bellarmine_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr pontif._n rom._n cap._n 31._o do_v call_v the_o pope_n the_o foundation_n of_o the_o build_n of_o the_o church_n fundamentum_fw-la aedisicij_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la and_o in_o his_o preface_n before_o his_o book_n the_o pontisice_n rom._n he_o say_v that_o the_o seat_n of_o peter_n or_o the_o pope_n chair_n be_v the_o approve_a stone_n the_o corner_n and_o precious_a stone_n place_v in_o the_o soundation_n of_o which_o the_o prophet_n i_o say_v speak_v c._n 8._o and_o 28._o and_o with_o he_o concur_v sanders_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o rock_n of_o the_o church_n stapleton_n also_o declare_v the_o matter_n most_o plain_o in_o praefat_fw-la in_o relect_v princip_n doctr_n where_o he_o say_v that_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christian_a religion_n be_v necessary_o place_v in_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n teach_v we_o in_o who_o he_o say_v he_o hear_v god_n speak_v to_o us._n his_o word_n be_v in_o hac_fw-la docentis_fw-la hominis_fw-la authoritate_fw-la he_o speak_v of_o the_o pope_n in_o qua_fw-la deum_fw-la loquentem_fw-la audimus_fw-la religionis_fw-la nostrae_fw-la cognoscenda_fw-la fundamentum_fw-la necessariò_fw-la pom_fw-la credimus_fw-la and_o this_o other_o must_v necessary_o also_o hold_v for_o they_o hold_v he_o to_o be_v the_o supreme_a interpreter_n of_o scripture_n and_o a_o infallible_a judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n of_o religion_n and_o a_o lawgiver_n to_o our_o conscience_n bind_v all_o man_n conscience_n by_o his_o law_n which_o be_v the_o common_a opinion_n as_o bellarmine_n lib._n 4._o de_fw-la pontifice_fw-la rom._n c._n 16._o say_v of_o all_o casuiste_n a_o pitiful_a case_n therefore_o it_o be_v wherein_o the_o papist_n stand_v who_o conscience_n be_v chain_v with_o so_o many_o bond_n this_o then_o be_v find_v in_o the_o survey_n of_o the_o ground_n of_o popish_a religion_n let_v we_o also_o consider_v what_o conclusion_n may_v be_v hence_o infer_v that_o we_o may_v as_o well_o survey_v the_o conclusion_n as_o the_o premise_n first_o it_o follow_v that_o these_o ground_n be_v blasphemous_a both_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o enditer_n and_o author_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o also_o in_o regard_n of_o christ_n jesus_n the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o finisher_n of_o our_o say_v the_o doctrine_n and_o religion_n of_o popery_n can_v be_v clear_a of_o blasphemy_n for_o to_o match_v popish_a decretales_fw-la with_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o pope_n determination_n with_o god_n law_n be_v derogatory_n to_o god_n holy_a spirit_n and_o a_o plain_a disparagement_n to_o god_n holy_a law_n likewise_o it_o be_v blasphemous_a to_o accuse_v the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o insufficiency_n and_o imperfection_n and_o to_o attribute_v more_o certainty_n and_o perspicuity_n to_o the_o decretales_fw-la of_o the_o pope_n then_o to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n it_o be_v also_o blasphemous_a either_o to_o remove_v christ_n out_o of_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n or_o at_o the_o least_o to_o join_v the_o pope_n with_o he_o in_o the_o foundation_n and_o that_o as_o a_o more_o necessary_a foundation_n for_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christian_a religion_n as_o stapleton_n say_v the_o same_o also_o be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n 1._o cor._n 3._o ephes_n 2._o and_o of_o s._n james._n c._n 4._o in_o the_o first_o of_o which_o place_n we_o find_v that_o no_o other_o foundation_n can_v be_v lay_v of_o the_o church_n but_o christ_n jesus_n in_o the_o 2._o we_o read_v that_o the_o church_n be_v found_v upon_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n in_o the_o 3._o we_o understand_v that_o there_o be_v only_o one_o lawgiver_n and_o judge_n which_o be_v able_a to_o save_v and_o destroy_v it_o be_v final_o very_o impious_a and_o blasphemous_a to_o assirme_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o more_o certain_a and_o superior_a judge_n than_o god_n himself_o speak_v to_o we_o in_o scripture_n or_o then_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n that_o be_v lead_v into_o all_o truth_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n of_o other_o blasphemy_n of_o popery_n
rom._n pray_v in_o breviar_n rom._n auge_fw-mi pijs_fw-la iustitiam_fw-la reisque_fw-la dona_fw-la veniam_fw-la that_o be_v increase_v righteousness_n in_o the_o godly_a and_o grant_v pardon_n to_o sinner_n to_o these_o image_n they_o burn_v incense_v as_o do_v the_o heathen_a to_o their_o idol_n nay_o alexander_n hales_n p._n 3._o q._n 30._o art_n ult._n and_o thomas_n aquinas_n 3._o p._n q._n 25._o art_n 3._o and_o other_o schoolman_n affirm_v that_o what_o honour_n be_v due_a to_o the_o original_n the_o same_o be_v also_o due_a to_o the_o image_n which_o be_v more_o than_o the_o heathen_a ever_o suppose_v last_o they_o kiss_v these_o image_n touch_v they_o with_o their_o bead_n and_o because_o they_o be_v blind_a set_v up_o light_a before_o they_o three_o we_o read_v deut._n 4._o that_o god_n to_o repress_v the_o idolatry_n of_o his_o people_n tell_v they_o that_o when_o they_o hear_v he_o speak_v out_o of_o the_o fire_n in_o mount_n horeb_n yet_o they_o see_v no_o likeness_n of_o any_o thing_n do_v they_o not_o then_o run_v into_o this_o sin_n that_o make_v the_o likeness_n of_o god_n and_o represent_v god_n the_o father_n in_o the_o image_n of_o a_o old_a man_n and_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o figure_n of_o a_o dove_n if_o this_o be_v not_o idolatry_n yet_o it_o be_v certain_o idolatry_n to_o give_v the_o same_o honour_n to_o one_o of_o these_o image_n which_o they_o give_v to_o god_n neither_o will_v they_o deny_v that_o it_o be_v idolatry_n to_o give_v god_n honour_n to_o creature_n they_o must_v therefore_o either_o deny_v these_o image_n to_o be_v creature_n or_o confess_v themselves_o to_o be_v idolater_n four_o where_o god_n by_o the_o prophet_n psal_n 81._o forbid_v the_o have_v of_o new_a god_n or_o worship_v strange_a god_n say_v non_fw-la erit_fw-la in_o te_fw-la deus_fw-la recens_fw-la neque_fw-la adorabis_fw-la deum_fw-la alienum_fw-la we_o be_v teach_v that_o it_o be_v idolatry_n to_o have_v new_a god_n or_o to_o worship_v strange_a god_n but_o the_o papist_n every_o day_n make_v new_a crucifix_n and_o new_a god_n of_o the_o altar_n and_o the_o pope_n also_o canonize_v new_a saint_n which_o every_o one_o of_o his_o follower_n be_v bind_v to_o worship_n these_o be_v also_o most_o strange_a god_n for_o neither_o be_v they_o know_v to_o the_o people_n of_o god_n before_o christ_n nor_o be_v any_o such_o thing_n worship_v by_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n final_o some_o crucifix_n be_v so_o evilfavoured_a and_o some_o saint_n so_o huge_a and_o monstrous_a that_o they_o be_v more_o fit_a to_o scare_v crow_n than_o to_o be_v worship_v of_o christian_n the_o holy_a scripture_n amos._n 5._o and_o act._n 7._o condemn_v they_o for_o idolater_n that_o worship_v and_o serve_v the_o host_n of_o heaven_n but_o the_o papist_n deny_v not_o but_o that_o dulia_n and_o service_n be_v due_a to_o angel_n and_o saint_n and_o all_o the_o host_n of_o heaven_n and_o according_o they_o do_v they_o service_n in_o most_o ample_a manner_n the_o gentile_n be_v condemn_v psal_n 114._o for_o that_o they_o worship_v image_n of_o silver_n and_o gold_n and_o the_o work_n of_o man_n hand_n image_n i_o say_v that_o have_v mouth_n &_o speak_v not_o eye_n &_o see_v not_o nose_n and_o smell_v not_o hands_z and_z handle_v not_o foot_n but_o walk_v not_o and_o that_o be_v not_o able_a to_o viter_fw-la one_o word_n out_o of_o their_o throat_n now_o glad_o will_v i_o have_v any_o papist_n to_o show_v i_o that_o their_o image_n be_v of_o other_o matter_n and_o form_n and_o that_o they_o have_v more_o perfect_a sense_n than_o the_o image_n of_o the_o gentile_n the_o lady_n of_o loreto_n notwithstanding_o the_o report_n of_o her_o great_a miracle_n neither_o see_v nor_o speak_v one_o word_n the_o gentile_n do_v think_v they_o offer_v sacrifice_n please_v to_o god_n yet_o the_o apostle_n 1._o cor._n 10._o because_o they_o be_v offer_v without_o warrant_n say_v they_o offer_v they_o to_o devil_n if_o then_o the_o papist_n have_v no_o warrant_n for_o their_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o honour_n of_o angel_n and_o saint_n then_o be_v they_o to_o be_v repute_v as_o idolater_n and_o sacrificer_n to_o devil_n the_o prophet_n hicremie_n c._n 7._o declare_v they_o to_o be_v idolater_n that_o build_v high_a place_n never_o command_v by_o god_n and_o make_v vow_n to_o the_o queen_n of_o heaven_n and_o serve_v she_o but_o this_o be_v just_a the_o case_n of_o masspriest_n that_o in_o every_o great_a church_n have_v high_a altar_n and_o that_o without_o commandment_n of_o god_n or_o precedent_n of_o ancient_a catholic_n they_o do_v also_o make_v vow_n to_o our_o lady_n who_o they_o call_v the_o queen_n of_o heaven_n and_o serve_v she_o most_o diligent_o say_v more_o have_v maria_n than_o prayer_n to_o god_n in_o the_o book_n of_o baruch_n c._n 6._o the_o babylonian_n be_v repute_v to_o beidolater_n for_o that_o they_o carry_v their_o god_n of_o gold_n silver_n wood_n and_o stone_n upon_o their_o shoulder_n adorn_v they_o with_o costly_a apparel_n and_o jewel_n worship_v they_o albeit_o their_o face_n be_v dusty_a and_o they_o unable_a to_o guard_v themselves_o from_o rust_n corruption_n and_o thief_n why_o then_o shall_v not_o the_o papist_n be_v so_o repute_v likewise_o see_v they_o adorn_v dumb_a idol_n and_o worship_v they_o that_o can_v guard_v themselves_o from_o corruption_n and_o rust_n and_o be_v often_o steal_v away_o by_o thief_n or_o melt_a to_o serve_v base_a use_n be_v it_o more_o ridiculous_a in_o the_o heathen_a to_o carry_v about_o their_o image_n then_o for_o the_o papist_n the_o idolatrous_a jew_n be_v condemn_v for_o say_v to_o a_o stock_n thou_o be_v my_o father_n and_o to_o a_o stone_n thou_o have_v beget_v i_o as_o we_o read_v hieremy_n 2._o and_o yet_o the_o papist_n before_o stock_n and_o stone_n say_v pater_fw-la noster_fw-la and_o the_o babble_a friar_n in_o their_o chair_n turn_v to_o a_o little_a crucifix_n of_o wood_n or_o mettle_n set_v by_o they_o say_v thou_o have_v redeem_v we_o thou_o have_v reconcile_v us._n and_o this_o bellarmine_n lib._n 2._o the_o cult_a sanct_n c._n 23._o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o allow_v but_o all_o of_o they_o together_o must_v be_v thrust_v into_o the_o roll_n of_o idolater_n s._n john_n give_v christian_n warning_n to_o keep_v themselves_o from_o grave_a image_n 1._o john_n 5._o but_o why_o so_o if_o there_o be_v no_o idolatry_n in_o worship_v they_o either_o must_v the_o papist_n deny_v their_o image_n to_o be_v simulachra_fw-la and_o themselves_o to_o worship_v they_o or_o confess_v themselves_o to_o be_v idolater_n the_o israelite_n judge_n 10._o confess_v their_o service_n of_o baalim_n or_o other_o lord_n to_o be_v lewd_a and_o idolatrous_a and_o god_n tax_v they_o there_o for_o serve_v and_o invocate_a other_n god_n if_o then_o the_o papist_n call_v upon_o their_o volto_n santo_n or_o their_o cross_n or_o the_o queen_n and_o host_n of_o heaven_n and_o serve_v they_o they_o can_v clear_v themselves_o from_o the_o fault_n of_o the_o idolatrous_a israelite_n the_o worship_n of_o angel_n both_o by_o scripture_n and_o father_n be_v condemn_v as_o idolatrous_a the_o apostle_n coloss_n 2._o exhorteh_a christian_n to_o beware_v lest_o they_o be_v seduce_v by_o humility_n and_o religion_n of_o angel_n the_o angel_n apocalyps_n 22._o forbid_v john_n to_o worship_v he_o and_o add_v this_o reason_n for_o that_o he_o be_v his_o fellow_n servant_n the_o worship_n of_o angel_n by_o the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n c._n 35._o be_v declare_v to_o be_v idolatrous_a christian_n must_v not_o leave_v the_o church_n say_v the_o council_n and_o make_v meeting_n for_o the_o idolatrous_a worship_n of_o angel_n theodoret_n in_o coloss_n 2._o say_v that_o by_o this_o council_n those_o be_v condemn_v that_o pray_v to_o angel_n s._n hierom._n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la riparium_fw-la say_v that_o christian_n neither_o adore_v angel_n nor_o archangel_n we_o honour_v they_o with_o love_n say_v s._n augustine_n de_fw-fr ver_fw-la relig_n c._n 55._o and_o not_o with_o service_n nor_o do_v we_o build_v temple_n to_o they_o god_n will_v not_o have_v we_o to_o adore_v angel_n say_v epiphanius_n haeres_fw-la 79._o final_o tertullian_n the_o prescript_n advers_a haeret_fw-la show_v that_o the_o service_n of_o angel_n be_v account_v to_o be_v idolatry_n and_o that_o it_o descend_v from_o simon_n magus_n but_o the_o papist_n can_v deny_v but_o they_o serve_v angel_n they_o also_o pray_v unto_o they_o in_o their_o public_a litany_n say_v sancte_fw-la michael_n sancte_fw-la gabriel_n sancte_fw-la raphael_n omnes_fw-la angeli_fw-la &_o archangeli_fw-la orate_fw-la pro_fw-la nobis_fw-la in_o their_o mass_n they_o confess_v their_o sin_n to_o angel_n say_v confiteor_fw-la beato_n michaeli_n archangelo_fw-la in_o their_o breviaries_n they_o pray_v to_o a_o angel_n unknowen_a who_o they_o call_v their_o guardian_n but_o pray_v
for_o christ_n use_v they_o not_o neither_o be_v they_o hebrew_n but_o latin_a seventh_o in_o jerusalem_n it_o be_v never_o believe_v that_o christ_n either_o do_v eat_v up_o himself_o or_o offer_v himself_o to_o his_o father_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n or_o that_o he_o offer_v himself_o twice_o or_o that_o there_o be_v any_o priest_n after_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n but_o christ_n for_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n teach_v contrary_a final_o we_o never_o read_v that_o the_o christian_n in_o jerusalem_n believe_v that_o some_o mass_n be_v wet_a some_o dry_a some_o in_o the_o honour_n of_o angel_n some_o in_o the_o honour_n of_o saint_n some_o in_o the_o honour_n of_o confessor_n some_o good_a for_o pig_n other_o for_o horse_n some_o for_o quick_a some_o for_o dead_a or_o that_o all_o those_o trick_n and_o skip_n be_v commendable_a which_o the_o masspriest_n use_v at_o the_o altar_n or_o that_o christ_n ordain_v either_o the_o consecration_n of_o church_n with_o the_o alphabet_n in_o greek_a or_o that_o priest_n be_v to_o use_v those_o ceremony_n which_o now_o be_v frequent_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o mass_n that_o the_o pope_n come_v not_o from_o jerusalem_n it_o appear_v first_o for_o that_o among_o all_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n describe_v eph._n 4._o and_o 1._o cor._n 12._o there_o be_v no_o pope_n nor_o monarch_n of_o the_o church_n express_v we_o read_v of_o apostle_n prophet_n evangelist_n pastor_n and_o other_o but_o the_o pope_n be_v quite_o forget_v which_o be_v most_o unlikely_a especial_o consider_v that_o he_o be_v by_o the_o papist_n suppose_v to_o be_v the_o head_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n second_o the_o name_n be_v rather_o latin_a than_o hebrew_n or_o syriake_n for_o some_o derive_v it_o from_o papè_fw-la because_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o wonderment_n of_o the_o world_n some_o from_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d some_o from_o the_o 2._o syllable_n of_o pater_fw-la patrum_fw-la three_o at_o hierissalem_n never_o be_v there_o any_o term_v by_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n vicar_n general_n or_o that_o wear_v a_o triple_a crown_n and_o have_v a_o guard_n of_o switzars_n attend_v upon_o he_o four_o saint_n peter_n never_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o depose_v king_n or_o to_o translate_v kingdom_n from_o one_o to_o another_o which_o the_o pope_n now_o usurp_v five_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la and_o decree_n which_o contain_v the_o pope_n office_n and_o authority_n and_o the_o marrow_n of_o his_o religion_n have_v proceed_v from_o rome_n and_o not_o from_o jerusalem_n six_o we_o read_v that_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o not_o the_o pope_n law_n come_v from_o jerusalem_n final_o the_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o pope_n for_o the_o most_o part_n have_v be_v invent_v and_o publish_v since_o jerusalem_n come_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o saracen_n and_o turk_n if_o then_o it_o come_v from_o the_o turkey_n jerusalem_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v rather_o turkish_a than_o christian_n the_o decretales_fw-la be_v rather_o like_o the_o alcoran_n than_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o force_n that_o the_o pope_n use_v against_o christian_n proceed_v rather_o from_o mahomet_n then_o from_o s._n peter_n the_o pilgrimage_n to_o rome_n be_v like_o the_o pilgrimage_n to_o mecha_n last_o both_o turk_n and_o papist_n worship_n saint_n and_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a alike_o to_o proceed_v a_o little_a further_o the_o romish_a fine_a sacrament_n add_v to_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n have_v never_o allowance_n by_o the_o apostle_n remain_v at_o jerusalem_n for_o albeit_o marriage_n priesthood_n and_o repentance_n be_v always_o practise_v by_o the_o people_n of_o god_n under_o the_o law_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o use_v as_o sacrament_n neither_o in_o these_o matter_n do_v either_o the_o people_n of_o god_n under_o the_o law_n or_o the_o first_o christian_n use_v the_o popish_a order_n and_o form_n or_o sacrament_n now_o at_o rome_n frequent_v in_o time_n past_o neither_o be_v priest_n prohibit_v to_o marry_v nor_o be_v there_o any_o time_n limit_v for_o marriage_n nor_o be_v it_o deem_v unlawful_a for_o gossip_n to_o marry_v in_o jerusalem_n never_o be_v any_o such_o form_n of_o order_v of_o priest_n know_v as_o be_v use_v in_o popery_n where_o they_o say_v receive_v power_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n for_o quick_a and_o dead_a nor_o do_v the_o christian_n of_o jerusalem_n believe_v that_o there_o be_v seven_o order_n and_o every_o one_o a_o sacrament_n and_o yet_o but_o one_o sacrament_n in_o all_o or_o that_o priest_n be_v to_o have_v shave_a crown_n to_o think_v that_o the_o first_o christian_n at_o jerusalem_n confess_v their_o sin_n every_o year_n at_o the_o least_o in_o the_o priest_n care_n be_v most_o absurd_a likewise_o to_o say_v that_o the_o form_n of_o absolution_n that_o be_v now_o use_v be_v then_o know_v three_o christian_n than_o do_v neither_o lash_n themselves_o nor_o think_v to_o satisfy_v for_o sin_n by_o eat_a saltfish_n or_o go_v barefoot_a last_o they_o neither_o believe_v that_o christian_n be_v to_o satisfy_v for_o their_o sin_n in_o purgatory_n nor_o that_o the_o pope_n carry_v the_o key_n of_o purgatory_n and_o can_v deliver_v soul_n from_o thence_o by_o indulgence_n this_o form_n of_o confirmation_n signo_fw-la te_fw-la signo_fw-la crucis_fw-la &_o confirmo_fw-la te_fw-la chrismate_fw-la salutis_fw-la etc._n etc._n be_v by_o authority_n first_o establish_v in_o the_o conventicle_n of_o florence_n under_o eugenius_n the_o 4._o a_o venetian_a and_o not_o by_o any_o that_o come_v from_o jerusalem_n he_o also_o order_v that_o oil_n and_o balm_n shall_v be_v the_o matter_n of_o this_o sacrament_n bonaventure_n and_o alexander_n hale_v affirm_v that_o confirmation_n be_v institute_v at_o melda_n popish_a confirmation_n be_v far_o degenerate_v from_o that_o confirmation_n that_o be_v use_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o which_o we_o retain_v in_o england_n the_o form_n also_o &_o matter_n of_o extreme_a unction_n be_v there_o appoint_v by_o eugenius_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o character_n and_o effect_n of_o extreme_a unction_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v but_o in_o the_o fraple_v schoolman_n now_o he_o that_o shall_v seek_v for_o the_o original_n of_o holy_a water_n and_o holy_a salt_n and_o holy_a candle_n at_o jerusalem_n he_o shall_v but_o seek_v to_o draw_v water_n out_o of_o a_o flint_n and_o as_o well_o may_v he_o light_v a_o candle_n in_o the_o sea_n water_n in_o the_o roman_a missal_n we_o find_v these_o word_n i_o exorcise_v or_o conjure_v thou_o thou_o creature_n of_o water_n and_o exorcizo_fw-la te_fw-la creatura_fw-la salis_fw-la and_o such_o like_a but_o stapleton_n shall_v show_v these_o thing_n out_o of_o some_o hebrew_n or_o syriake_n missal_n the_o eat_n of_o paschal_n lamb_n i_o confess_v be_v use_v at_o jerusalem_n but_o not_o by_o christian_n but_o by_o jew_n observe_v the_o ceremony_n of_o moses_n his_o law_n the_o romish_a missal_n breviaries_n our_o lady_n psalter_n the_o rosary_n and_o such_o like_a book_n and_o ceremony_n come_v out_o of_o the_o closet_n of_o the_o pope_n breast_n and_o not_o from_o jerusalem_n as_o i_o think_v our_o adversary_n will_v confess_v if_o they_o be_v put_v to_o the_o question_n in_o rome_n upon_o good_a friday_n they_o make_v agnus_fw-la dei_fw-la of_o holy_a wax_n and_o holy_a chrism_n and_o these_o they_o say_v do_v defend_v christian_n from_o lightning_n and_o tempest_n hiagnia_fw-la fulgure_n &_o tempestate_fw-la fideles_fw-la &_o credentes_fw-la defendunt_fw-la say_v durand_n rational_a diumor_n lib._n 6._o c._n 79._o but_o this_o ceremony_n come_v never_o from_o jerusalem_n neither_o do_v the_o christian_n there_o believe_v any_o such_o doctrine_n when_o a_o church_n be_v consecrate_v the_o bishop_n sprinkle_v the_o wall_n with_o holy_a water_n knock_v at_o the_o door_n and_o say_v attollite_fw-la principes_fw-la portas_fw-la vestras_fw-la than_o he_o make_v cross_n on_o the_o pavement_n and_o describe_v all_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a alphabet_n as_o durand_n show_v lib._n 1._o rat_n divin_v c._n 6._o but_o if_o popery_n have_v come_v from_o jerusalem_n it_o be_v more_o likely_a he_o shall_v describe_v the_o hebrew_n alphabet_n such_o abuse_n of_o scripture_n and_o foolish_a ceremony_n certes_o never_o come_v from_o the_o christian_n of_o hicrusalem_n but_o from_o the_o follower_n of_o antichrist_n at_o rome_n the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n make_v the_o old_a latin_a vulgar_a translation_n authentical_a but_o if_o the_o same_o have_v hope_v to_o prove_v the_o romish_a religion_n by_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o same_o will_v never_o have_v neglect_v the_o hebrew_n text_n the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n diligent_o observe_v god_n commandment_n concern_v the_o make_n and_o worship_v of_o granen_n image_n and_o the_o whole_a worship_n of_o god_n we_o may_v not_o
contulit_fw-la say_v the_o author_n of_o that_o donation_n ut_fw-la in_o toto_fw-la orbe_fw-la romani_fw-la pontifices_fw-la vel●saecendotes_n ita_fw-la hun●_n caput_fw-la habeant_fw-la sicut_fw-la iudices_fw-la regem_fw-la so_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o preeminence_n of_o roman_a bishop_n over_o all_o priest_n proceed_v from_o the_o emperor_n grant_n and_o not_o from_o any_o ordinance_n of_o christ_n or_o divine_a authority_n likewise_o we_o read_v that_o the_o counsel_n of_o constantinople_n ephesus_n and_o chalcedon_n be_v call_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o emperor_n and_o that_o their_o act_n and_o decree_n be_v ratify_v by_o they_o and_o not_o by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n more_o than_o other_o bishop_n as_o be_v pretend_v further_o in_o the_o confession_n of_o faith_n publish_v by_o those_o counsel_n and_o receive_v by_o theodosius_n martian●●s_n and_o other_o christian_a emperor_n there_o be_v not_o one_o article_n of_o popery_n so_o much_o as_o mention_v nay_o albeit_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n oppugn_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n concern_v the_o privilege_n of_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n yet_o prevail_v they_o not_o last_o the_o condemnation_n of_o eutyches_n in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n do_v overthrow_v the_o popish_a real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o transubstantiation_n for_o if_o christ_n have_v a_o true_a body_n that_o be_v circumscriptible_a &_o solid_a then_o be_v not_o christ_n body_n real_o in_o every_o consecrate_a host_n and_o if_o that_o according_a as_o after_o the_o union_n of_o the_o nature_n both_o remain_v so_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v after_o consecration_n as_o the_o father_n of_o that_o council_n pretend_v then_o away_o fly_v the_o fancy_n of_o popish_a transubstantiation_n recaredus_n king_n of_o spain_n assemble_v the_o three_o council_n of_o toledo_n chase_v arianisme_n out_o of_o his_o dominion_n publish_v a_o confession_n of_o the_o faith_n which_o all_o christian_a bishop_n of_o that_o country_n receive_v and_o govern_v and_o confirm_v the_o council_n publico_fw-la regis_fw-la edicto_fw-la confirmatum_fw-la est_fw-la concilium_fw-la the_o council_n be_v confirm_v by_o public_a proclamation_n of_o the_o king_n say_v the_o compiler_n of_o the_o act_n of_o that_o council_n final_o in_o all_o the_o act_n there_o be_v not_o one_o article_n of_o popery_n confirm_v but_o the_o 21._o canon_n that_o allow_v psalm_n to_o be_v sing_v at_o burial_n do_v utter_o overthrow_v dirge_n and_o mass_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n for_o how_o can_v they_o choose_v but_o sorrow_n for_o the_o dead_a that_o believe_v their_o friend_n soul_n to_o be_v in_o purgatory_n the_o 22._o canon_n forbid_v dance_n and_o immodest_a song_n on_o holy_a day_n the_o 16._o canon_n be_v direct_v against_o the_o worship_n of_o idol_n the_o 11._o canon_n reprove_v priest_n that_o absolve_v public_a sinner_n without_o due_a act_n of_o repentance_n which_o be_v a_o abuse_n very_o common_a in_o the_o masspriest_n final_o in_o this_o synod_n the_o spaniard_n follow_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n and_o not_o of_o rome_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o second_o canon_n justinian_n the_o emperor_n as_o be_v report_v in_o the_o law_n inter_fw-la claras_fw-la cod._n de_fw-fr sum_n trin._n publish_v a_o confession_n of_o faith_n which_o he_o command_v to_o be_v receive_v throughout_o his_o dominion_n but_o therein_o be_v not_o any_o article_n of_o popery_n mention_v nay_o diverse_a of_o his_o law_n concern_v the_o ordination_n of_o bishop_n the_o order_n of_o church_n and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n declare_v that_o unto_o his_o time_n the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n belong_v to_o king_n and_o prince_n and_o that_o yet_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o usurp_v his_o general_a authority_n nor_o exclude_v temporal_a prince_n he_o decree_v that_o the_o sacrament_n shall_v be_v administer_v contrary_a to_o the_o popish_a form_n in_o a_o audible_a voice_n and_o in_o atongue_n that_o may_v be_v understand_v gregory_n the_o first_o acknowledge_v himself_o subject_a to_o the_o emperor_n and_o willing_a to_o execute_v his_o commandment_n which_o show_v that_o the_o emperor_n as_o yet_o hold_v his_o authority_n and_o will_v not_o yield_v it_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n his_o faith_n also_o be_v the_o same_o which_o other_o emperor_n profess_v for_o as_o yet_o antichrist_n have_v not_o gain_v the_o primacy_n gregory_n himself_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o serenus_n of_o massilia_n praise_v he_o for_o that_o he_o suffer_v not_o image_n to_o be_v adore_v and_o no_o man_n need_v to_o doubt_v but_o that_o maurice_n the_o emperor_n concur_v with_o he_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n leo_fw-la the_o four_o in_o the_o chapter_n de_fw-fr capitulis_fw-la do_v 11._o profess_v that_o he_o will_v see_v the_o emperor_n order_n by_o all_o mean_v keep_v de_fw-fr capitulis_fw-la vel_fw-la praeceptis_fw-la imperialibus_fw-la vestris_fw-la etc._n etc._n irrefragabiliter_fw-la custodiendis_fw-la say_v he_o quantum_fw-la valuimus_fw-la &_o valemus_fw-la christ_n propitio_fw-la &_o nunc_fw-la &_o in_fw-la aewm_fw-la nos_fw-la conseruaturos_fw-la modis_fw-la omnibus_fw-la profitemur_fw-la this_o therefore_o be_v a_o argument_n that_o the_o christian_n faith_n as_o yet_o be_v maintain_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n &_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v then_o make_v no_o alteration_n by_o their_o decretales_fw-la as_o not_o have_v as_o yet_o settle_v their_o supreme_a and_o tyrannical_a authority_n in_o the_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o this_o leo_n neither_o be_v transubstantiation_n nor_o the_o necessity_n of_o auricular_a confession_n in_o the_o priest_n ear_n for_o all_o sin_n nor_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n hear_v of_o beda_n in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o ecclesiastical_a history_n praise_v king_n ceolulphus_n for_o that_o he_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o holy_a scripture_n diligent_o but_o now_o among_o papist_n lay-man_n be_v not_o commend_v for_o hear_v scripture_n at_o that_o time_n neither_o be_v the_o 7._o sacrament_n confirm_v nor_o the_o pope_n doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n and_o indulgence_n once_o deliver_v irene_n though_o a_o semipagan_a empress_n and_o a_o worshipper_n of_o image_n yet_o do_v not_o give_v divine_a worship_n to_o the_o crucifix_n or_o image_n of_o the_o trinity_n charles_n the_o great_a in_o a_o synod_n at_o francford_n condemn_v the_o idolatrous_a decree_n of_o the_o 2._o nicene_n synod_n assemble_v under_o irene_n ansegisus_fw-la lib._n 2._o c._n 19_o show_v that_o he_o decree_v that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n beside_o canonical_a scripture_n the_o same_o author_n report_v diverse_a law_n make_v by_o he_o and_o his_o son_n ludovic_n contrary_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o modern_a romish_a church_n kellison_n therefore_o shall_v work_v a_o wonder_n if_o he_o can_v prove_v that_o either_o of_o these_o emperor_n believe_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o have_v both_o the_o sword_n and_o rule_v both_o on_o earth_n and_o in_o purgatory_n neither_o shall_v he_o be_v able_a to_o show_v that_o they_o believe_v that_o public_a service_n and_o sacrament_n be_v to_o be_v celebrate_v in_o a_o tongue_n not_o understand_v or_o that_o those_o be_v the_o apostle_n successor_n that_o neither_o preach_v nor_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n before_o the_o conventicle_n of_o laterane_n christian_n king_n and_o prince_n know_v now_o what_o transubstantiation_n mean_v neither_o do_v they_o receive_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n before_o the_o synod_n at_o constance_n in_o the_o conventicle_n of_o florence_n under_o eugenue_n the_o 4._o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o seven_o sacrament_n of_o purgatory_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n begin_v to_o be_v in_o more_o reputution_n the_o rest_n of_o their_o heresy_n the_o pope_n and_o his_o complice_n can_v not_o procure_v to_o be_v authorize_v before_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n and_o yet_o the_o french_a refuse_v to_o admit_v the_o act_n of_o that_o conventicle_n and_o the_o emperor_n charles_n the_o five_o by_o his_o agent_n protest_v against_o they_o the_o queen_n of_o england_n king_n of_o denmark_n prince_n of_o germany_n and_o many_o other_o state_n resolute_o reject_v and_o contemn_v they_o so_o we_o see_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v neuer_o receive_v by_o many_o christian_a prince_n especial_o this_o form_n of_o doctrine_n that_o be_v prescribe_v by_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n the_o pope_n excommunication_n provision_n rapine_n violence_n and_o tyranny_n we_o find_v to_o have_v be_v of_o most_o christian_a king_n resist_v when_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n begin_v to_o lift_v up_o their_o heel_n against_o the_o eastern_a emperor_n leo_n isauricus_n and_o other_o and_o to_o excommunicate_v they_o they_o neglect_v their_o censure_n and_o in_o the_o eastern_a part_n be_v obey_v as_o before_o henry_n the_o 4._o emperor_n of_o rome_n
the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n and_o therefore_o we_o may_v not_o think_v that_o they_o teach_v that_o christ_n have_v a_o body_n invisible_a or_o inpalpable_a or_o that_o his_o body_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n at_o one_o time_n and_o yet_o not_o continue_v to_o itself_o or_o that_o his_o soul_n be_v omnipotent_a or_o omniscient_a or_o that_o christian_n be_v to_o believe_v that_o dog_n and_o hog_n do_v eat_v christ_n body_n and_o yet_o that_o all_o the_o communicant_n save_o the_o priest_n be_v to_o be_v exclude_v from_o the_o cup_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n or_o that_o christ_n be_v only_o the_o meritorious_a cause_n of_o our_o justification_n and_o salvation_n and_o that_o formal_o we_o be_v justify_v and_o save_v by_o our_o own_o work_n or_o that_o remission_n of_o sin_n can_v be_v obtain_v unless_o we_o come_v to_o auricular_a confession_n and_o have_v the_o masspriest_n absolution_n or_o that_o the_o pope_n by_o his_o indulgence_n out_o of_o superfluous_a merit_n of_o saint_n be_v able_a to_o deliver_v soul_n from_o purgatory_n or_o other_o popish_a heresy_n and_o wicked_a doctrine_n before_o mention_v for_o these_o doctrine_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o which_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o apostle_n preach_v be_v contain_v gregory_n the_o first_o lib._n 4._o epist_n 32._o do_v dislike_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n and_o call_v it_o sacrilegious_a and_o profane_a he_o do_v also_o condemn_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n lib._n 7._o epist_n 109._o and_o lib._n 9_o epist_n 9_o and_o commend_v serenus_n the_o bishop_n of_o massilia_n for_o reprove_v the_o adoration_n of_o image_n neither_o do_v he_o allow_v any_o more_o than_o the_o historical_a use_n of_o they_o that_o purgatory_n which_o gregory_n the_o dialogist_n speak_v of_o differ_v much_o from_o popish_a purgatory_n be_v rather_o design_v for_o venial_a sin_n than_o for_o satisfaction_n for_o temporal_a pain_n after_o the_o fault_n remit_v lib._n moral_a 19_o c._n 16._o he_o show_v that_o the_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n be_v not_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o lib._n 14._o moral_n c._n 32._o that_o christ_n body_n be_v solid_a and_o not_o like_o a_o spirit_n and_o lib._n 4._o dial_n c._n 55._o that_o thing_n above_o in_o the_o eucharist_n be_v unite_v to_o thing_n below_o summa_fw-la imis_fw-la consociantur_fw-la of_o which_o it_o follow_v that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o presence_n as_o the_o papist_n imagine_v nor_o any_o transubstantiation_n for_o if_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n reside_v above_o be_v unite_v to_o thing_n below_o then_o be_v not_o christ_n body_n include_v within_o the_o accident_n of_o the_o host_n nor_o be_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n abolish_v augustine_n the_o monk_n bring_v with_o he_o a_o cross_n and_o the_o image_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o a_o table_n and_o do_v sing_v litany_n as_o bede_n testify_v lib._n 1_o hist_o angl._n c._n 25._o but_o we_o do_v not_o read_v that_o hoe_v fill_v church_n with_o image_n or_o that_o he_o worship_v christ_n image_n or_o the_o cross_n with_o latria_fw-la or_o that_o in_o his_o litany_n he_o call_v upon_o saint_n or_o angel_n bede_n say_v they_o pray_v to_o god_n litanias_fw-la canentes_fw-la etc._n etc._n domino_fw-la supplicabant_fw-la if_o then_o we_o can_v find_v the_o point_n of_o popery_n which_o we_o refuse_v in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o in_o any_o record_n mention_v the_o doctrine_n of_o joseph_n of_o arimathaea_n eleutherius_fw-la gregory_n or_o austen_n but_o rather_o find_v they_o to_o be_v opposite_a to_o their_o doctrine_n and_o denise_v afterward_o then_o unless_o we_o mean_v to_o remove_v the_o ancient_a limit_n and_o bound_n set_v down_o to_o we_o by_o our_o father_n and_o to_o refuse_v the_o counsel_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proverb_n 22._o we_o may_v not_o return_v to_o popery_n forasmuch_o as_o the_o first_o converter_n of_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o this_o land_n be_v no_o author_n nor_o favourer_n of_o popish_a superstition_n heresy_n impiety_n and_o blasphemy_n chap._n xv._o that_o popish_a religion_n be_v most_o false_o term_v catholic_a religion_n and_o papist_n catholic_n catholic_a religion_n as_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n in_o his_o commonitory_n chap._n 3._o do_v teach_v we_o be_v that_o which_o always_o have_v be_v believe_v and_o of_o all_o christian_n we_o be_v to_o hold_v say_v he_o that_o which_o always_o have_v be_v believe_v of_o all_o christian_n for_o that_o be_v proper_o catholic_a but_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n contain_v in_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la and_z dispute_v of_o the_o canonist_n and_o schoolman_n have_v not_o always_o be_v believe_v of_o all_o christian_n their_o faith_n therefore_o be_v not_o catholic_a the_o assumption_n be_v prove_v not_o only_o by_o the_o novelty_n of_o the_o decretales_fw-la gloss_n of_o canonist_n and_o sum_n and_o resolution_n of_o the_o school_n divine_v but_o also_o by_o the_o falsehood_n and_o contrariety_n of_o the_o doctrine_n therein_o contain_v nicholas_n in_o his_o decretale_a ego_fw-la berengarius_fw-la de_fw-mi consecrat_fw-mi do_v 2._o teach_v that_o christ_n body_n sensual_o be_v handle_v with_o the_o hand_n of_o priest_n and_o tear_v with_o tooth_n but_o this_o be_v contrary_n to_o scripture_n father_n and_o truth_n innocent_n in_o the_o chapter_n firmiter_fw-la de_fw-fr sum_n trinit_fw-la &_o fid_fw-we cath_z say_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v transubstantiat_fw-la into_o christ_n body_n which_o be_v false_a for_o christ_n say_v of_o bread_n which_o he_o take_v this_o be_v my_o body_n the_o canonist_n honour_n the_o pope_n as_o a_o god_n on_o earth_n as_o the_o head_n foundationmonah_o rcand_a spouse_n of_o the_o church_n the_o schoolman_n brabble_n one_o with_o another_o and_o sometime_o change_v their_o own_o opinion_n bellarmine_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-la purgat_fw-la c._n 3._o confess_v that_o thomas_n aquinas_n change_v his_o opinion_n concern_v the_o merit_n of_o soul_n in_o purgatory_n most_o schoolman_n build_v doctrine_n of_o faith_n upon_o philosophical_a ground_n and_o very_o both_o from_o scripture_n and_o father_n in_o their_o doctrine_n of_o the_o divine_a attribute_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o soul_n of_o merit_n of_o sacrament_n and_o diverse_a other_o point_n how_o then_o can_v we_o repute_v these_o doctrine_n to_o be_v catholic_a it_o be_v the_o property_n of_o catholic_n say_v vincentius_n lirinensis_n commonit_a c._n 34._o to_o keep_v the_o doctrine_n commit_v to_o they_o and_o leave_v with_o they_o by_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o to_o avoid_v profane_a novelty_n but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o schoolman_n concern_v the_o divine_a attribute_n concern_v the_o example_n of_o the_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n bring_v by_o the_o master_n of_o sentence_n the_o eat_n of_o christ_n body_n by_o brute_n beast_n and_o diverse_a other_o point_n be_v full_a of_o profaneness_n and_o novelty_n their_o reason_n also_o be_v more_o philosophical_a and_o sophistical_a then_o apostolical_a all_o the_o point_n in_o controversy_n betwixt_o we_o and_o they_o be_v mere_a novelty_n as_o the_o decretales_fw-la whereon_o they_o depend_v declare_v leo_n epist_n 81._o say_v that_o there_o be_v one_o true_a only_o perfect_a and_o inviolable_a faith_n whereto_o nothing_o can_v be_v add_v and_o from_o which_o nothing_o can_v be_v take_v but_o unto_o this_o faith_n the_o pope_n have_v add_v their_o determination_n concern_v tradition_n the_o carnal_a real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n transubstantiation_n the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n the_o pope_n vicarship_n general_a and_o universal_a power_n purgatory_n indulgence_n the_o worship_n of_o image_n and_o diverse_a other_o point_n of_o doctrine_n do_v it_o not_o then_o appear_v that_o popery_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o corruption_n of_o doctrine_n come_v in_o after_o the_o publication_n of_o the_o christian_a catholic_a faith_n and_o add_v unto_o it_o furthermore_o as_o the_o apostolic_a doctrine_n be_v catholic_a and_o universal_a so_o heretical_a opinion_n be_v particular_a and_o peculiar_a to_o certain_a sect_n and_o person_n and_o time_n but_o we_o have_v show_v that_o popery_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o pack_n of_o old_a and_o new_a heresy_n last_o by_o many_o particular_n it_o may_v be_v prove_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o papist_n have_v neither_o be_v teach_v at_o all_o time_n nor_o embrace_v of_o all_o christian_n nor_o spread_v over_o all_o the_o world_n which_o do_v plain_o declare_v that_o neither_o the_o doctrine_n be_v catholic_a nor_o the_o professor_n thereof_o true_o term_v catholic_n first_o they_o teach_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o imperfect_a rule_n and_o unsufficient_a without_o tradition_n and_o speak_v lewd_o of_o they_o call_v they_o a_o nose_n of_o wax_n a_o kill_a and_o dead_a letter_n a_o matter_n of_o strife_n and_o what_o else_o they_o listen_v to_o devise_v in_o their_o
the_o pope_n law_n as_o the_o resistance_n of_o the_o church_n of_o asia_n against_o victor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n against_o sozimus_n and_o other_o pope_n declare_v 20._o of_o late_a time_n friar_n especial_o the_o capucin_n have_v attire_v themselves_o like_o chimney_n sweeper_n &_o burner_n of_o house_n 21._o the_o rule_n of_o monk_n and_o friar_n be_v diverse_a from_o the_o rule_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o can_v not_o be_v elder_a than_o the_o order_n of_o monk_n and_o friar_n 22._o gregory_n the_o seven_o as_o otho_n frisingensis_n say_v be_v the_o first_o that_o do_v excommunicate_v the_o emperor_n and_o teach_v that_o he_o have_v power_n to_o assoil_v subject_n from_o the_o other_o of_o obedience_n to_o prince_n 23._o the_o use_n of_o private_a mass_n without_o communion_n be_v but_o new_a as_o the_o old_a ordinall_n of_o rome_n that_o have_v no_o mass_n of_o that_o nature_n declare_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n forbid_v christian_n to_o depart_v before_o they_o receive_v the_o communion_n 24._o innocent_n the_o three_o in_o the_o chap._n omnis_fw-la utriusque_fw-la de_fw-fr poenit_fw-la &_o remiss_a do_v first_o bring_v in_o a_o necessity_n of_o auricular_a confession_n he_o also_o be_v the_o first_o father_n of_o the_o monster_n transubstantiation_n as_o we_o find_v by_o the_o chapter_n firmiter_fw-la de_fw-fr sum_n trinit_fw-la &_o fid_fw-we cathol_n 25._o purgatory_n for_o satisfaction_n for_o temporal_a pain_n of_o sin_n who_o guilt_n before_o be_v remit_v be_v first_o devise_v by_o schoolman_n 26._o the_o jubiley_n among_o christian_n be_v first_o devise_v by_o boniface_n the_o eigth_n he_o also_o decree_v first_o that_o all_o temporal_a prince_n and_o other_o upon_o pain_n of_o damnation_n must_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n 27._o popish_a indulgence_n be_v but_o of_o a_o late_a stamp_n and_o the_o school_n doctrine_n thereof_o much_o latter_a the_o papist_n themselves_o be_v as_o yet_o not_o full_o resolve_v what_o to_o think_v of_o they_o 28._o clement_n the_o six_o first_o devise_v the_o treasure_n out_o of_o which_o indulgence_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v grant_v as_o appear_v by_o the_o chap._n unigenitus_fw-la extr_n depoenit_fw-la &_o remiss_a 29._o the_o doctrine_n of_o case_n reserve_v to_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o once_o speak_v of_o in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o father_n and_o yet_o the_o masspriest_n make_v a_o great_a matter_n of_o they_o 30._o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o pope_n penitentiary_n tax_v for_o dispatch_v of_o pardon_n for_o murder_n incest_n sodomy_n and_o all_o villainy_n i_o think_v kellison_n will_v not_o contend_v to_o be_v very_o ancient_a 31._o bellarmine_n doctrine_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr verb._n dei_fw-la c._n 3._o concern_v the_o new_a testament_n where_o he_o say_v it_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o love_n of_o god_n shed_v into_o our_o heart_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v new_a for_o it_o contradict_v chrysostome_n theodoret_n and_o other_o in_o 2._o cor._n 3._o who_o teach_v that_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v god_n grace_n remit_v sin_n 32._o the_o prohibition_n of_o marriage_n between_o spiritual_a gossip_n be_v a_o late_a device_n of_o the_o pope_n for_o gain_v 33._o the_o separation_n of_o marry_a couple_n for_o religion_n before_o consummation_n of_o marriage_n without_o consent_n of_o both_o the_o party_n be_v both_o new_a and_o wicked_a 34._o the_o popish_a ceremony_n use_v in_o baptism_n be_v of_o a_o late_a invention_n as_o for_o example_n salt_n spittle_n candle_n and_o popish_a exorcism_n 35._o of_o late_o they_o have_v begin_v to_o exorcise_v salt_n in_o salutem_fw-la credentium_fw-la for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o holy_a water_n to_o cast_v our_o devil_n and_o to_o drive_v away_o discase_n these_o consuration_n be_v not_o find_v in_o the_o old_a romish_a ordinal_n 36._o the_o masseppriest_n have_v now_o get_v a_o new_a trick_n to_o sprinkle_v the_o altar_n with_o holy_a water_n and_o to_o say_v thou_o shall_v sprinkle_v i_o with_o hyssop_n and_o i_o shall_v be_v cleanse_v apply_v the_o scripture_n contrary_a to_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 37._o honorius_n the_o three_o in_o the_o chapter_n sane_fw-la cum_fw-la olim_fw-la de_fw-fr celebr_fw-fr miss_v do_v first_o ordain_v that_o the_o sacrament_n shall_v be_v worship_v and_o safe_o keep_v and_o carry_v with_o light_n to_o those_o that_o be_v sick_a 38._o half_n communion_n be_v direct_v contrary_a to_o christ_n institution_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n and_o first_o establish_v in_o the_o conventicle_n of_o constance_n 39_o the_o mass_n can_v be_v old_a for_o that_o nauclerus_fw-la platina_n polydore_n and_o other_o confess_v be_v be_v innent_v by_o diverse_a author_n long_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n 40._o the_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a now_o find_v in_o the_o mass_n be_v not_o to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o book_n call_v ordo_fw-la romanus_n 41._o in_o old_a time_n the_o father_n never_o believe_v that_o christ_n have_v a_o body_n invisible_a and_o incircumscriptible_a and_o that_o may_v be_v in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o many_o place_n at_o one_o time_n 42._o the_o godly_a bishop_n of_o old_a time_n do_v neither_o swinge_n the_o chalice_n about_o their_o head_n nor_o make_v cross_n about_o it_o when_o they_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n 43._o the_o say_n of_o service_n and_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n in_o tongue_n not_o understand_v be_v a_o foolish_a novelty_n 44._o now_o in_o the_o roman_a catechism_n they_o teach_v that_o every_o mass-priest_n consecrate_v work_v three_o miracle_n but_o in_o old_a time_n they_o be_v never_o take_v for_o such_o worker_n of_o miracle_n 45._o the_o papist_n after_o their_o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la say_v their_o ave_fw-la maria_n and_o pray_v to_o our_o lady_n which_o practice_n be_v neither_o ancient_a nor_o apostolical_a 46._o the_o psalter_n of_o our_o lady_n and_o her_o peculiar_a office_n and_o mass_n in_o honour_n of_o saint_n will_v not_o be_v justify_v by_o ancient_a precedent_n 47._o hardly_o will_v the_o papist_n bring_v a_o precedent_n of_o 300._o year_n old_a to_o prove_v that_o christian_n pray_v to_o the_o cross_n for_o increase_v of_o justice_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n 48._o in_o the_o missal_n of_o sarum_n the_o priest_n say_v to_o the_o sacrament_n have_v or_o hail_n and_o bow_v to_o it_o contrary_a to_o all_o ancient_a practice_n 49._o the_o worship_n of_o papist_n must_v needs_o be_v new_a for_o that_o both_o their_o saint_n be_v new_a and_o their_o prayer_n and_o office_n new_a 50._o the_o missal_n breviaries_n and_o office_n of_o our_o lady_n have_v their_o antiquity_n from_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n 51._o popish_a idolater_n worship_v the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o cross_n with_o divine_a honour_n but_o they_o shall_v never_o bring_v allowance_n of_o antiquity_n for_o this_o practice_n 52._o they_o burn_v also_o incense_v to_o dumb_a image_n kiss_v they_o and_o bow_v to_o they_o but_o these_o unchristian_a trick_n be_v not_o know_v in_o old_a time_n 53._o of_o late_a time_n they_o have_v decree_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o the_o council_n but_o it_o be_v since_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n 54._o now_o the_o pope_n pretend_v right_a to_o handle_v the_o temporal_a sword_n but_o that_o do_v not_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n after_o christ_n 55._o of_o late_a time_n the_o pope_n have_v tread_v upon_o the_o neck_n of_o emperor_n but_o in_o ancient_a time_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v subject_a to_o emperor_n 56._o in_o time_n past_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v persecute_v and_o martyr_v now_o the_o pope_n of_o late_a time_n persecute_v and_o martyr_v other_o final_o all_o the_o point_n of_o doctrine_n differ_v from_o the_o faith_n o_o this_o church_n which_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o complice_n seek_v now_o to_o thrust_v upon_o christian_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n novelty_n and_o this_o do_v clear_o appear_v in_o this_o for_o that_o they_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n as_o before_o have_v be_v particular_o declare_v the_o same_o be_v also_o coutrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o father_n and_o ancient_a church_n practice_v as_o we_o shall_v declare_v hereafter_o further_o the_o papist_n have_v turn_v the_o whole_a service_n of_o god_n into_o a_o mass_a mommery_n final_o for_o god_n they_o worship_v saint_n and_o dumb_a image_n the_o institution_n of_o christ_n jesus_n in_o the_o eucharist_n they_o have_v alter_v new_a sacrament_n they_o have_v devise_v be_v they_o not_o then_o ashamed_a to_o call_v popery_n ancient_a christian_a religion_n chap._n xvii_o that_o poperic_n be_v repugnant_a to_o ancient_a counsel_n much_o doc_fw-fr papist_n brag_v of_o counsel_n campion_n say_v the_o first_o last_o and_o midst_n be_v he_o concilia_fw-la generalia_fw-la mea_fw-la sunt_fw-la general_a counsel_n say_v he_o be_v all_o for_o i_o
church_n of_o late_a time_n by_o the_o popish_a faction_n in_o england_n france_n flanders_n italy_n and_o elsewhere_o we_o read_v that_o diverse_a have_v be_v betray_v by_o their_o own_o kinsfolk_n brethren_n and_o friend_n and_o find_v that_o fulfil_v which_o our_o saviour_n christ_n foretell_v we_o luc._n 21._o how_o christian_n shall_v be_v betray_v of_o their_o parent_n brethren_n kinsman_n and_o friend_n in_o spain_n they_o force_v parent_n to_o bring_v wood_n to_o burn_v their_o child_n and_o child_n to_o set_v fire_n to_o their_o parent_n alphonsus_n dias_n come_v post_n from_o rome_n and_o cause_v his_o own_o brother_n to_o be_v murder_v for_o that_o he_o have_v embrace_v true_a religion_n it_o be_v report_v that_o in_o england_n queen_n marie_n if_o she_o have_v live_v any_o long_a will_v have_v cause_v the_o bone_n of_o her_o own_o father_n to_o have_v be_v dig_v up_o and_o burn_v it_o be_v also_o a_o common_a practice_n of_o child_n in_o place_n where_o popery_n reign_v to_o abandon_v their_o parent_n and_o to_o profess_v monkery_n airault_n of_o angiers_n in_o france_n a_o man_n of_o good_a note_n lose_v his_o only_a son_n by_o the_o entisement_n of_o the_o jebusite_n persuade_v to_o enter_v into_o their_o superstitious_a order_n neither_o can_v the_o father_n ever_o after_o hear_v what_o be_v become_v of_o he_o and_o so_o have_v many_o parent_n be_v deprive_v of_o their_o son_n and_o daughter_n under_o colour_n of_o religion_n oftentimes_o draw_v away_o to_o serve_v the_o masspriest_n abominable_a lust_n this_o among_o papist_n be_v count_v religion_n but_o the_o example_n savour_v rather_o of_o turkish_a than_o christian_a religion_n for_o as_o the_o child_n of_o christian_n be_v take_v from_o their_o parent_n and_o friend_n and_o make_v janisar_n and_o so_o employ_v in_o the_o war_n against_o christian_n so_o these_o novice_n be_v by_o fraud_n and_o wily_a devise_n steal_v from_o their_o christian_a parent_n and_o friend_n and_o afterward_o employ_v in_o the_o defence_n of_o antichristian_a doctrine_n against_o truth_n and_o the_o professor_n thereof_o final_o they_o that_o profess_v popery_n zealous_o do_v forget_v oftentimes_o all_o law_n of_o common_a civility_n late_o the_o pouderman_n papist_n have_v think_v to_o cut_v all_o their_o countryman_n throat_n the_o masle-priest_n esteem_v lay-man_n not_o otherwise_o then_o dog_n and_o hog_n common_o when_o they_o appear_v before_o magistrate_n that_o be_v not_o of_o their_o own_o religion_n they_o give_v they_o no_o reverence_n alexander_n the_o three_o tread_v upon_o the_o emperor_n frederick_n barbarossaes_n neck_n adrian_z the_o 4._o suffer_v he_o to_o hold_v his_o stirrup_n other_o pope_n have_v use_v king_n and_o prince_n as_o their_o stassier_n and_o for_o their_o hand_n they_o give_v christian_n their_o foot_n to_o kiss_v neither_o be_v this_o a_o fault_n of_o the_o practice_n but_o also_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o popery_n for_o these_o fact_n they_o common_o defend_v and_o forbid_v all_o speech_n communication_n deal_v with_o excommunicate_a person_n os_fw-la orare_fw-la vale_n communio_fw-la mensa_fw-la negatur_fw-la say_v navarrus_n in_o enchirid_a c._n 27._o these_o word_n speak_v of_o levi_n deuter._n 33._o which_o say_v to_o his_o father_n and_o mother_n i_o know_v you_o not_o be_v apply_v to_o all_o that_o enter_v into_o any_o order_n of_o monkish_a religion_n as_o we_o may_v perceive_v by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o bellarmine_n lib._n the_o monach_n c._n 36._o whosoever_o therefore_o look_v for_o filial_a obedience_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o child_n have_v need_v ●o_o look_v that_o they_o be_v not_o nouzle_v in_o popery_n whoso_o expect_v for_o kind_n and_o friendly_a usage_n must_v not_o consort_v himself_o with_o papist_n who_o towards_o christian_n use_v neither_o respect_n of_o kindred_n nor_o of_o friendship_n &_o upon_o every_o warrant_n of_o the_o pope_n take_v themselves_o absolve_v from_o their_o obedience_n to_o their_o superior_n whether_o they_o rule_v in_o church_n or_o common_a wealth_n and_o by_o all_o mean_n suppose_v themselves_o bind_v to_o cut_v christian_a man_n throat_n chap._n xxxvi_o that_o popish_a religion_n either_o disannul_v or_o great_o preiudice_v the_o authority_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n christian_n religion_n do_v give_v a_o eminent_a authority_n and_o prerogative_n to_o king_n s._n peter_n 1._o epist_n 2._o exo_v all_o christian_n to_o subinit_fw-la themselves_o unto_o they_o and_o s._n paul_n rom._n 13._o teach_v every_o soul_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o high_a power_n tertullian_n in_o his_o treatise_n ad_fw-la scapulam_fw-la show_v that_o the_o emperor_n be_v next_o under_o god_n supreme_a governor_n colimus_fw-la imperatorem_fw-la say_v he_o sic_fw-la quomodo_fw-la &_o nobis_fw-la licet_fw-la &_o ipsi_fw-la expedit_fw-la ut_fw-la hominem_fw-la a_o deo_fw-la secundum_fw-la we_o honour_v the_o emperor_n etc._n etc._n as_o a_o man_n that_o have_v the_o next_o place_n to_o god_n can_v we_o then_o with_o any_o reason_n suppose_v popery_n to_o savour_n of_o christian_a religion_n that_o either_o make_v the_o emperor_n and_o other_o king_n subject_n to_o the_o pope_n or_o else_o take_v away_o a_o great_a part_n of_o his_o authority_n that_o the_o papist_n hold_v all_o temporal_a prince_n to_o be_v inferior_a and_o subject_a to_o the_o pope_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v innocentius_n the_o three_o in_o c._n solitae_fw-la de_fw-fr maior_fw-la &_o ob_v dispute_v this_o matter_n compare_v the_o pope_n to_o the_o sun_n and_o the_o emperor_n to_o the_o moon_n as_o if_o the_o emperor_n be_v as_o many_o degree_n inferior_a to_o the_o pope_n as_o the_o moon_n be_v to_o the_o sun_n quanta_fw-la est_fw-la inter_fw-la solemn_a &_o lunam_fw-la tanta_fw-la inter_fw-la pontifices_fw-la &_o reges_fw-la differentia_fw-la cognoscitur_fw-la clement_n the_o sift_n in_o the_o chapter_n romani_fw-la principes_fw-la de_fw-fr iureiurando_fw-la declare_v that_o the_o emperor_n of_o rome_n have_v submit_v their_o head_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n sva_fw-la submittere_fw-la capita_fw-la non_fw-la reputarunt_fw-la indignum_fw-la again_o he_o show_v how_o they_o ought_v to_o take_v a_o oath_n of_o fealty_n and_o obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n the_o author_n of_o the_o gloss_n in_o c._n romani_n clem_v de_fw-fr iureiurando_fw-la assign_v all_o this_o subjection_n of_o prince_n to_o christ_n his_o institution_n jesus_n voluit_fw-la say_v he_o in_o the_o chapter_n pastoralis_fw-la clem_v de_fw-mi send_v &_o reiudicat_fw-la the_o pope_n determine_v that_o by_o right_a of_o the_o papacy_n he_o have_v superiority_n over_o the_o empire_n and_o that_o in_o the_o vacancy_n of_o the_o empire_n himself_o have_v the_o right_a of_o the_o emperor_n bonisace_n the_o 8._o writing_n to_o the_o french_a king_n give_v he_o to_o understand_v that_o he_o be_v the_o pope_n subject_a both_o in_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a matter_n scire_fw-la to_o volumus_fw-la say_v he_o quoth_v in_o spiritualibus_fw-la &_o temporalibus_fw-la nobis_fw-la subes_fw-la in_o the_o chapter_n unam_fw-la sanctam_fw-la extr_n de_fw-fr maior_fw-la &_o ob_v he_o determine_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v both_o the_o sword_n and_o that_o he_o have_v power_n both_o to_o make_v king_n and_o to_o depose_v they_o spiritualis_fw-la potestas_fw-la potestatem_fw-la terrenam_fw-la instituere_fw-la habet_fw-la &_o iudicare_fw-la si_fw-la bona_fw-la non_fw-la fuerit_fw-la that_o be_v the_o spiritual_a power_n have_v right_a to_o ordain_v the_o earthly_a power_n and_o to_o judge_v the_o same_o if_o it_o be_v not_o good_a josephus_n vestanus_n lib._n de_fw-la osculat_fw-la pedum_fw-la pontisicis_fw-la p._n 137._o among_o the_o dictate_v of_o gregory_n the_o 7._o set_v down_o this_o for_o one_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o pope_n to_o depose_v the_o emperor_n pius_fw-la the_o fist_n in_o his_o blundr_a bull_n against_o queen_n elizabeth_n our_o late_a dread_a sovereign_n blush_v not_o to_o affirm_v that_o the_o pope_n alone_o be_v make_v a_o prince_n and_o set_v over_o all_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n to_o pull_v up_o to_o destroy_v to_o dissipate_v and_o spaile_n to_o plant_v and_o to_o build_v hunc_fw-la unum_fw-la say_v he_o super_fw-la omnes_fw-la gentes_fw-la &_o ommae_fw-la regna_fw-la principen_v constituit_fw-la qui_fw-la cuellat_n destruat_fw-la dissipet_fw-la disperdat_fw-la plantet_fw-la &_o aedisicet_fw-la this_o also_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o modern_a jebusite_n and_o their_o complice_n bellarm._n lib._n 5._o de_fw-la pontis_fw-la rom._n c._n 6._o speak_v of_o the_o pope_n teach_v that_o he_o have_v power_n to_o change_v kingdom_n and_o to_o take_v from_o one_o and_o to_o give_v to_o another_o if_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o sane_v soul_n and_o this_o he_o offer_v to_o prove_v potest_fw-la mutare_fw-la regna_fw-la say_v he_o &_o uni_fw-la auferre_fw-la atque_fw-la altericonserre_fw-la si_fw-la id_fw-la necessarium_fw-la sit_fw-la ad_fw-la animarum_fw-la salutem_fw-la ut_fw-la probabimus_fw-la the_o jebusite_n of_o france_n in_o a_o discourse_n entitle_v la_fw-fr veritè_fw-fr defendue_a blush_v not_o to_o defend_v the_o pope_n usurp_a power_n in_o
foundation_n and_o pillar_n of_o our_o faith_n they_o do_v make_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n not_o write_v equal_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o upon_o they_o nay_o upon_o the_o decretales_fw-la of_o pope_n and_o practice_v of_o masseprieste_n do_v build_v their_o faith_n all_o antiquity_n esteem_v holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v the_o canon_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o therefore_o call_v they_o canonical_a but_o the_o romanist_n esteem_v they_o to_o be_v a_o unperfect_a canon_n without_o their_o tradition_n and_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la and_o determination_n bellarmine_n lib._n 4._o de_fw-fr verb._n dei_fw-la c._n 4._o say_v they_o be_v neither_o necessary_a nor_o sufficient_a without_o tradition_n the_o father_n never_o account_v the_o book_n of_o tobiah_n judith_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la wisdom_n and_o the_o maccabee_n equal_a to_o the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n and_o prophet_n extant_a original_o in_o hebrew_a as_o appear_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o hierome_n in_o prologo_fw-la galeato_fw-la of_o athanasius_n in_o synopsi_fw-la of_o nazianzen_n in_o carm_n of_o epiphanius_n and_o diverse_a other_o old_a and_o new_a writer_n the_o papist_n in_o the_o synod_n of_o trent_n decree_v they_o to_o be_v of_o equal_a authority_n with_o the_o rest_n the_o ancient_a catholic_n ever_o esteem_v the_o hebrew_n text_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o the_o greek_a of_o the_o new_a to_o be_v more_o authentical_a than_o any_o translation_n the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n have_v make_v the_o old_a latin_a vulgar_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n authentical_a and_o do_v not_o give_v that_o honour_n to_o the_o original_a book_n of_o the_o bible_n the_o canonical_a scripture_n we_o say_v receive_v their_o force_n from_o the_o author_n of_o they_o and_o this_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o father_n and_o by_o argument_n from_o scripture_n law_n and_o reason_n they_o say_v that_o scripture_n receive_v force_n and_o authority_n in_o respect_n of_o we_o from_o the_o church_n or_o rather_o from_o the_o pope_n papist_n be_v neither_o willing_a that_o scripture_n be_v turn_v into_o vulgar_a tongue_n nor_o will_v permit_v they_o to_o be_v read_v of_o the_o vulgar_a sort_n without_o licence_n or_o public_o read_v in_o vulgar_a tongue_n in_o the_o church_n final_o they_o say_v they_o be_v obscure_a and_o hard_a to_o be_v understand_v and_o speak_v what_o they_o can_v in_o their_o disgrace_n second_o they_o teach_v erroneous_o concern_v christ_n natural_a body_n and_o concern_v his_o office_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n they_o believe_v to_o be_v both_o in_o heaven_n and_o on_o earth_n on_o every_o altar_n at_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o time_n they_o also_o hold_v that_o his_o body_n be_v real_o under_o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n give_v he_o a_o body_n neither_o visible_a nor_o palpable_a nor_o in_o any_o sort_n like_a to_o we_o they_o teach_v further_o that_o his_o body_n be_v in_o diverse_a place_n where_o it_o fill_v not_o the_o place_n and_o that_o his_o one_o body_n have_v relation_n to_o diverse_a place_n they_o believe_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o faithful_a before_o christ_n come_n be_v in_o hell_n or_o at_o least_o in_o limbo_n which_o be_v a_o part_n of_o hell_n and_o be_v thence_o deliver_v by_o christ_n go_v to_o hell_n as_o if_o his_o cross_n have_v wrought_v nothing_o for_o they_o they_o teach_v that_o christ_n as_o man_n be_v omniscient_a and_o per_fw-la consequent_a omnipotent_a and_o that_o he_o be_v vir_fw-la perfectus_fw-la that_o be_v a_o perfect_a or_o grow_v man_n from_o the_o first_o instant_n of_o his_o conception_n his_o office_n of_o mediation_n they_o give_v to_o the_o virgin_n mary_n to_o angel_n and_o to_o saint_n they_o make_v also_o saint_n our_o redeemer_n teach_v that_o by_o their_o merit_n christian_n obtain_v their_o desire_n and_o be_v deliver_v out_o of_o purgatory_n to_o masspriest_n they_o give_v priesthood_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n and_o say_v that_o they_o offer_v up_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n real_o for_o quick_a and_o dead_a final_o they_o make_v the_o pope_n head_n spouse_n and_o monarch_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o do_v they_o teach_v more_o catholikely_a of_o christ_n mystical_a body_n then_o of_o his_o natural_a body_n for_o they_o subject_v the_o same_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o exclude_v all_o from_o christ_n that_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o pope_n the_o true_a member_n thereof_o they_o persecute_v and_o make_v heretic_n and_o reprobate_n and_o such_o as_o live_v without_o order_n or_o law_n profess_v their_o religion_n outward_o true_a member_n of_o christ_n body_n the_o church_n say_v they_o be_v always_o so_o conspicuous_a and_o visible_a that_o every_o one_o may_v see_v it_o and_o discern_v it_o the_o true_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v true_a doctrine_n and_o the_o sincere_a administration_n of_o sacrament_n and_o holiness_n of_o life_n they_o deny_v assign_v most_o common_a and_o uncerteine_a mark_n as_o unity_n universality_n antiquity_n succession_n and_o such_o like_a the_o pope_n they_o make_v a_o most_o certain_a and_o infallible_a interpreter_n of_o scripture_n and_o judge_v of_o matter_n of_o faith_n they_o give_v he_o authority_n to_o make_v law_n for_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o power_n to_o bind_v man_n conscience_n they_o make_v he_o more_o sovereign_a than_o a_o general_a council_n and_o say_v that_o his_o power_n in_o give_v indulgence_n reach_v into_o purgatory_n they_o say_v he_o have_v power_n to_o excommunicate_v and_o depose_v king_n and_o to_o give_v away_o their_o kingdom_n to_o other_o betwixt_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o roman_a church_n they_o make_v no_o difference_n equal_v a_o part_n to_o the_o whole_a they_o say_v also_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n can_v neither_o err_v nor_o fail_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n consist_v in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n but_o they_o place_v the_o same_o in_o certain_a external_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n and_o in_o mere_a humane_a invention_n and_o device_n nay_o for_o god_n they_o worship_v creature_n not_o only_o give_v divine_a honour_n to_o the_o sacrament_n but_o also_o to_o crucifix_n and_o image_n of_o the_o trinity_n make_v of_o wood_n stone_n and_o colour_n they_o do_v also_o adore_v not_o only_a saint_n but_o rot_a bone_n and_o rag_n they_o know_v not_o of_o who_o to_o saint_n they_o pray_v they_o make_v vow_n they_o confess_v their_o sin_n to_o saint_n they_o erect_v church_n and_o altar_n to_o their_o image_n they_o burn_v incense_n and_o present_v diverse_a oblation_n and_o final_o in_o the_o honour_n of_o saint_n have_v devise_v particular_a mass_n and_o office_n transform_v the_o psalm_n and_o word_n of_o scripture_n to_o angel_n and_o saint_n their_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n be_v most_o exorbitant_a for_o they_o do_v not_o only_o add_v unto_o water_n in_o baptism_n salt_n spittle_n oil_n and_o diverse_a other_o ceremony_n partly_o idle_a partly_o superstitious_a but_o also_o unto_o the_o two_o sacrament_n institute_v by_o christ_n they_o equal_a confirmation_n matrimony_n penance_n order_n and_o extreme_a unction_n make_v they_o sacrament_n as_o well_o as_o baptism_n or_o the_o lord_n supper_n in_o confirmation_n they_o have_v devise_v both_o a_o new_a sign_n and_o new_a word_n in_o extreme_a unction_n they_o have_v devise_v new_a form_n in_o the_o order_n of_o priest_n they_o say_v accipe_fw-la potestatem_fw-la offerendi_fw-la sacrisicium_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la pro_fw-la vivis_fw-la &_o mortuis_fw-la that_o be_v receive_v power_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n in_o the_o church_n for_o quick_a and_o dead_a in_o penance_n they_o urge_v a_o necessity_n of_o confession_n strange_a form_n of_o whip_v and_o uncerteine_a hope_n and_o new_a device_n of_o satisfaction_n from_o matrimony_n they_o exclude_v priest_n monk_n and_o friar_n and_o make_v it_o a_o sacrament_n albeit_o they_o know_v neither_o certain_a sign_n nor_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o it_o but_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n they_o have_v quite_o abolish_v for_o that_o which_o christ_n ordain_v to_o be_v receive_v of_o the_o communicant_n that_o the_o masse-priest_n do_v offer_v for_o quick_a &_o dead_a and_o in_o the_o honour_n of_o saint_n and_o angel_n of_o which_o there_o be_v not_o one_o word_n speak_v in_o the_o institution_n our_o saviour_n in_o bread_n and_o wine_n institute_v his_o last_o supper_n these_o neither_o leave_n bread_n nor_o wine_n but_o make_v christian_n eater_n of_o man_n flesh_n and_o drinker_n of_o man_n blood_n like_o the_o cannibal_n &_o cyclopes_n christ_n ordain_v this_o sacrament_n in_o remembrance_n of_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n these_o make_v of_o the_o same_o a_o sacrifice_n in_o honour_n of_o angel_n and_o saint_n the_o cup_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n they_o take_v from_o christian_n abrogate_a as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v the_o new_a testament_n establish_v in_o christ_n blood_n and_o
yet_o they_o say_v christian_n sin_n mortal_o if_o they_o hear_v not_o mass_n every_o sunday_n and_o holiday_n of_o grace_n they_o speak_v as_o man_n devoid_a of_o grace_n and_o knowledge_n for_o by_o grace_n by_o which_o we_o be_v save_v and_o make_v acceptable_a to_o god_n they_o understand_v nothing_o else_o but_o either_o charity_n or_o a_o habit_n not_o distinct_a from_o charity_n so_o that_o albeit_o they_o exclude_v not_o grace_n from_o the_o work_n of_o our_o salvation_n yet_o make_v grace_n a_o habit_n or_o virtue_n they_o overthrow_n grace_n and_o ascribe_v the_o merit_n of_o our_o salvation_n not_o to_o god_n mercy_n through_o christ_n nor_o to_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o passion_n but_o proper_o to_o our_o own_o work_n and_o merit_n diverse_a of_o they_o say_v that_o man_n be_v predestinate_v for_o their_o merit_n foresee_v and_o all_o hold_n that_o man_n be_v reprobate_v for_o their_o sin_n foresee_v before_o they_o say_v further_o that_o the_o unregenerat_a have_v freewill_n as_o well_o as_o the_o regenerate_a and_o that_o not_o only_o in_o matter_n of_o this_o life_n but_o also_o to_o do_v work_n of_o piety_n and_o other_o supernatural_a effect_n the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n they_o have_v also_o much_o corrupt_v for_o they_o make_v charity_n the_o form_n of_o faith_n as_o if_o faith_n be_v without_o form_n or_o life_n of_o itself_o and_o as_o if_o the_o just_a man_n do_v not_o live_v by_o faith_n to_o this_o purpose_n they_o say_v that_o not_o only_o wicked_a and_o reprobat_fw-la man_n but_o also_o the_o devil_n of_o hell_n may_v have_v true_a and_o justify_v faith_n they_o hold_v further_o that_o by_o faith_n we_o be_v not_o only_o to_o hold_v whatsoever_o be_v contain_v in_o holy_a scripture_n but_o also_o whatsoever_o be_v deliver_v by_o tradition_n or_o determine_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o last_o that_o no_o man_n be_v to_o believe_v that_o he_o shall_v assure_o be_v save_v but_o rather_o to_o hold_v that_o he_o that_o be_v true_o justify_v may_v be_v damn_v concern_v the_o law_n of_o god_n they_o teach_v both_o contrary_n to_o reason_n and_o law_n for_o first_o they_o cut_v out_o the_o 2._o commandment_n in_o their_o office_n of_o our_o lady_n and_o their_o primer_n because_o it_o can_v well_o stand_v with_o the_o popish_a worship_n of_o image_n second_o they_o teach_v that_o concupiscence_n without_o our_o consent_n be_v not_o sin_n albeit_o the_o law_n say_v non_fw-la concupisces_fw-la three_o they_o say_v that_o it_o be_v sin_n as_o well_o to_o transgress_v the_o pope_n decree_n as_o god_n law_n four_o they_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v able_a either_o to_o dissolve_v the_o law_n as_o for_o example_n where_o he_o absolu_v subject_n from_o their_o obedience_n to_o prince_n and_o child_n from_o their_o duty_n to_o parent_n or_o at_o the_o least_o to_o dispense_v with_o the_o transgressor_n of_o the_o law_n as_o for_o example_n with_o perjure_a person_n adulterer_n sodomite_n murderer_n assassinors_n thief_n sacrilegious_a person_n and_o such_o like_a fift_o they_o believe_v that_o a_o man_n be_v able_a perfect_o to_o fulfil_v the_o law_n of_o which_o it_o follow_v that_o man_n be_v able_a to_o live_v without_o all_o sin_n which_o as_o augustine_n show_v lib._n 4._o de_fw-mi bono_fw-mi perseverat_fw-la c._n 2._o &_o 5_o and_o hierome_n advers_a pelag._n be_v flat_a pelagianisme_n in_o their_o doctrine_n of_o prayer_n they_o offend_v much_o yet_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o papist_n far_o worse_o than_o their_o doctrine_n in_o this_o point_n our_o saviour_n teach_v we_o to_o go_v to_o his_o father_n in_o his_o name_n they_o go_v to_o god_n by_o the_o intercession_n of_o saint_n nay_o oftentimes_o they_o run_v to_o saint_n angel_n and_o the_o bless_a virgin_n without_o once_o think_v of_o god_n especial_o if_o they_o think_v no_o more_o than_o they_o utter_v in_o their_o prayer_n they_o pray_v in_o a_o tongue_n which_o they_o understand_v not_o which_o be_v rather_o prate_v than_o pray_v they_o pray_v for_o remission_n of_o sin_n for_o the_o dead_a not_o know_v whether_o they_o be_v damn_v or_o no._n they_o pray_v before_o stock_n and_o stone_n nay_o they_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o they_o for_o if_o this_o be_v not_o so_o why_o shall_v they_o hope_v for_o better_a success_n at_o the_o image_n of_o our_o lady_n of_o loreto_n or_o monserat_fw-la than_o at_o any_o other_o image_n or_o form_n of_o our_o lady_n they_o believe_v that_o alm_n satisfy_v for_o sin_n and_o that_o those_o be_v best_a bestow_v that_o be_v give_v to_o monk_n and_o friar_n and_o such_o idle_a vagabond_n and_o plague_n of_o state_n whereas_o the_o first_o overthrow_v christ_n merit_n and_o satisfaction_n the_o second_o be_v a_o occasion_n of_o all_o the_o mischief_n brew_v by_o these_o moth_n of_o religion_n and_o blemish_n of_o state_n they_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v mortal_a sin_n not_o to_o fast_v on_o saint_n vigiles_fw-la embre_v day_n and_o other_o time_n appoint_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o fast_v stand_v in_o eat_v fish_n and_o abstain_v from_o our_o supper_n and_o such_o observance_n and_o final_o that_o such_o fast_n do_v not_o only_o satisfy_v for_o sin_n but_o also_o merit_n heaven_n conscience_n they_o know_v not_o for_o they_o make_v no_o conscience_n to_o cut_v christian_a man_n throat_n for_o not_o yield_v to_o all_o their_o abomination_n and_o think_v it_o conscience_n to_o obey_v the_o pope_n decree_n though_o very_o unlawful_a neither_o can_v they_o well_o avoid_v sin_n that_o know_v not_o what_o sin_n be_v the_o virgin_n mary_n by_o most_o of_o they_o be_v acquit_v from_o original_a sin_n and_o they_o define_v sin_n to_o be_v not_o only_o the_o transgression_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n but_o also_o every_o transgression_n of_o the_o law_n of_o the_o pope_n nay_o every_o breach_n of_o the_o law_n of_o man_n which_o utter_o take_v away_o the_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o man_n of_o the_o state_n of_o soul_n depart_v they_o seem_v to_o know_v little_a true_o although_o some_o say_v they_o know_v too_o much_o for_o they_o do_v not_o say_v as_o we_o do_v that_o there_o be_v two_o way_n after_o this_o life_n the_o one_o of_o the_o faithful_a to_o eternal_a life_n the_o other_o of_o the_o wicked_a to_o eternal_a death_n but_o they_o say_v that_o some_o go_v into_o purgatory_n and_o other_o into_o limbus_fw-la puerorum_fw-la and_o out_o of_o purgatory_n they_o say_v soul_n be_v deliver_v partly_o by_o mass_n and_o partly_o by_o indulgence_n all_o these_o point_n of_o erroneous_a &_o false_a doctrine_n and_o all_o other_o which_o either_o contrary_a or_o beside_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o pope_n and_o his_o complice_n have_v invent_v and_o bring_v into_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o call_v popery_n and_o this_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o this_o discourse_n and_o the_o doctrine_n against_o which_o we_o dispute_v let_v no_o man_n therefore_o think_v because_o the_o papist_n maintain_v many_o point_n of_o christian_a religion_n that_o either_o we_o reprehend_v that_o truth_n which_o they_o and_o we_o defend_v or_o that_o they_o can_v defend_v the_o error_n of_o popery_n because_o they_o hold_v some_o truth_n but_o either_o let_v they_o justify_v their_o error_n or_o else_o they_o shall_v be_v force_v to_o confess_v that_o the_o proper_a doctrine_n of_o popery_n be_v wicked_a and_o erroneous_a chap._n ii_o of_o the_o ground_n and_o foundation_n of_o popish_a religion_n as_o popery_n be_v diverse_a from_o christian_a religion_n so_o have_v the_o same_o other_o foundation_n than_o christian_n religion_n the_o doctor_n of_o trent_n in_o the_o four_o session_n of_o that_o synod_n have_v pronounce_v they_o anathema_n that_o shall_v not_o receive_v all_o the_o book_n of_o the_o bible_n as_o they_o be_v find_v in_o the_o old_a latin_a vulgar_a translation_n and_o read_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o holy_a and_o canonical_a or_o that_o shall_v witting_o contemn_v the_o tradition_n of_o that_o church_n do_v signify_v that_o this_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o confession_n of_o faith_n which_o they_o mean_v to_o publish_v so_o it_o appear_v they_o ground_n their_o faith_n beside_o canonical_a scripture_n upon_o apocryphal_a writing_n of_o tobiah_n judith_n wisdom_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la and_o the_o maccabee_n and_o diverse_a fragment_n of_o book_n not_o find_v in_o the_o hebrew_n text_n of_o the_o bible_n and_o upon_o tradition_n not_o write_v but_o deliver_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n from_o the_o apostle_n as_o they_o say_v and_o so_o come_v to_o their_o hand_n but_o where_o they_o speak_v of_o scripture_n it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o they_o do_v not_o simple_o allow_v they_o but_o as_o they_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o old_a vulgar_a translation_n and_o as_o they_o be_v expound_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n those_o which_o under_o any_o
commit_v fornication_n in_o thought_n than_o to_o marry_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o only_o covet_v but_o also_o usurp_v diverse_a part_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o thus_o hope_v to_o be_v save_v by_o the_o law_n the_o papist_n not_o only_o by_o their_o practice_n but_o also_o by_o their_o doctrine_n overthrow_v the_o law_n the_o pope_n by_o his_o dispensation_n annull_v and_o frustrate_v the_o law_n his_o complice_n more_o regard_v the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la than_o the_o eternal_a law_n of_o the_o live_a god_n this_o law_n of_o god_n they_o say_v may_v be_v persect_o perform_v by_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o as_o touch_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o action_n they_o hold_v that_o it_o may_v be_v perform_v without_o grace_n ex_fw-la quo_fw-la efficitur_fw-la say_v bellarmine_n lib._n 5._o de_fw-fr lib._n arbit_fw-la c._n 9_o tot_o be_o dei_fw-la legem_fw-la absque_fw-la auxilio_fw-la gratiae_fw-la quoad_fw-la substant_a iam_fw-la actionis_fw-la ab_fw-la hominibus_fw-la recte_fw-la seruari_fw-la posse_fw-la in_o the_o same_o book_n c._n 2._o he_o say_v that_o without_o any_o special_a help_n of_o god_n man_n may_v know_v veritatem_fw-la moralem_fw-la or_o the_o moral_a law_n with_o the_o circumstance_n thereof_o which_o be_v not_o only_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n declare_v man_n weakness_n and_o blindness_n but_o also_o overthrow_v the_o necessity_n of_o god_n grace_n for_o if_o man_n without_o grace_n both_o know_v the_o truth_n and_o be_v able_a according_a to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o action_n to_o perform_v the_o law_n then_o be_v he_o not_o dead_a in_o trespass_n and_o sin_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v nor_o do_v the_o papist_n believe_v in_o christ_n which_o say_v without_o i_o you_o can_v do_v nothing_o do_v it_o not_o then_o appear_v that_o popery_n be_v false_a erroneous_a and_o repugnant_a to_o god_n law_n &_o the_o ancient_a faith_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n chap._n four_o of_o the_o damnable_a doctrine_n of_o papist_n concern_v faith_n and_o justification_n the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o that_o the_o just_a shall_v live_v by_o faith_n but_o the_o papist_n do_v so_o handle_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n that_o the_o same_o can_v quicken_v any_o but_o be_v like_o rather_o to_o be_v the_o occasion_n of_o the_o fall_n and_o death_n of_o many_o first_o they_o teach_v that_o justify_n faith_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o firm_a assent_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o if_o a_o firm_a assent_n to_o every_o word_n of_o god_n do_v justify_v then_o be_v christian_n justify_v by_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o devil_n as_o well_o as_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n and_o as_o well_o be_v they_o justify_v by_o believe_v the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n as_o believe_v that_o grace_n and_o mercy_n be_v offer_v they_o in_o jesus_n christ_n nay_o as_o well_o may_v the_o devil_n have_v justify_v say_v as_o faithful_a christian_n for_o they_o do_v give_v their_o assent_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v truth_n but_o these_o be_v most_o damnable_a doctrine_n second_o they_o say_v that_o christian_n be_v as_o well_o to_o believe_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n not_o write_v as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o doctor_n of_o trent_n will_v have_v both_o receive_v with_o equal_a affection_n the_o author_n of_o the_o censure_n of_o colleinsol_n 91._o teach_v christian_n to_o believe_v not_o only_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v reveal_v in_o scripture_n but_o also_o such_o point_n as_o be_v deliver_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n but_o if_o this_o be_v grant_v then_o will_v it_o follow_v that_o christian_n be_v as_o well_o to_o believe_v the_o pope_n or_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o god_n himself_o and_o that_o faith_n be_v build_v upon_o man_n word_n and_o not_o only_o upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o last_o that_o faith_n be_v build_v not_o only_o upon_o uncertainty_n but_o also_o upon_o falsehood_n for_o such_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n many_o be_v uncertain_a and_o some_o very_a false_a and_o erroneous_a as_o be_v particular_o show_v in_o diverse_a treatise_n against_o romish_a tradition_n three_o they_o teach_v that_o faith_n be_v a_o gift_n and_o light_n by_o which_o a_o man_n be_v illustrate_v do_v firm_o assent_v &_o adhere_v to_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v reveal_v by_o god_n and_o propose_v to_o we_o by_o the_o church_n est_fw-la dei_fw-la donum_fw-la &_o lumen_fw-la say_v canisius_n cathechismi_n c._n 1._o quo_fw-la illustrate_v we_o homo_fw-la firmiter_fw-la assentitur_fw-la atque_fw-la adhaeret_fw-la ijs_fw-la quae_fw-la ut_fw-la credantur_fw-la sunt_fw-la divinitus_fw-la revelata_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la nobis_fw-la proposita_fw-la now_o by_o the_o church_n they_o understand_v the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o of_o this_o it_o follow_v first_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v no_o faith_n for_o how_o can_v a_o church_n propose_v and_o teach_v matter_n to_o itself_o this_o do_v utter_o destroy_v the_o nature_n of_o relation_n and_o therefore_o i_o think_v the_o learned_a romanist_n will_v hardly_o confess_v this_o to_o be_v true_a it_o follow_v next_o that_o christian_n be_v neither_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n nor_o to_o profess_v the_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n unless_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n propose_v they_o unto_o us._n but_o this_o be_v most_o absurd_a and_o impious_a for_o we_o believe_v in_o god_n and_o not_o in_o the_o pope_n nor_o in_o the_o church_n adhere_v to_o he_o that_o these_o consequent_n be_v good_a it_o be_v evident_a because_o they_o no_o less_o require_v that_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n be_v propose_v to_o we_o by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n than_o that_o they_o be_v reveal_v by_o god_n four_o as_o well_o do_v canisius_n require_v that_o christian_n believe_v that_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o eucharist_n as_o papist_n do_v hold_v it_o as_o the_o article_n of_o the_o trinity_n the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n and_o christ_n incarnation_n for_o all_o these_o article_n he_o join_v together_o catech._n c._n 1._o §_o 4._o but_o he_o can_v not_o say_v worse_o if_o he_o mean_v to_o overthrow_v the_o whole_a christian_a faith_n for_o the_o popish_a real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n &_o blood_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v contrary_a to_o christ_n meaning_n to_o word_n of_o scripture_n exposition_n of_o father_n the_o nature_n of_o sacrament_n and_o to_o humane_a reason_n and_o fence_n as_o at_o large_a be_v justify_v in_o my_o book_n de_fw-fr missa_fw-la against_o bellarmine_n five_o they_o teach_v that_o the_o wicked_a and_o reprobate_a nay_o that_o the_o devil_n of_o hell_n may_v have_v true_a faith_n but_o our_o saviour_n christ_n say_v john_n 3_o that_o whosoever_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v everlasting_a life_n so_o it_o follow_v by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o papist_n that_o the_o reprobate_n and_o the_o devil_n of_o hell_n may_v be_v save_v six_o they_o affirm_v that_o charity_n be_v the_o form_n of_o faith_n but_o the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o that_o the_o just_a do_v live_v by_o faith_n of_o which_o it_o follow_v that_o faith_n have_v a_o form_n of_o itself_o whereby_o it_o quicken_v us._n furthermore_o it_o be_v a_o absurd_a thing_n to_o make_v one_o virtue_n or_o habit_n the_o form_n of_o another_o and_o if_o this_o be_v tolerable_a that_o one_o quality_n be_v the_o form_n of_o another_o yet_o will_v it_o seem_v far_o more_o probable_a that_o faith_n shall_v be_v the_o form_n and_o life_n of_o charity_n and_o work_n for_o that_o without_o faith_n it_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o please_v god_n than_o that_o charity_n shall_v be_v the_o form_n of_o faith_n which_o do_v follow_v of_o faith_n seventh_o the_o jebusite_n of_o collein_n fol._n 122._o teach_v that_o faith_n be_v only_o of_o general_a proposition_n and_o hope_v of_o particular_n so_o it_o follow_v of_o their_o doctrine_n that_o no_o christian_n ought_v to_o believe_v that_o he_o or_o any_o other_o particular_a person_n have_v his_o sin_n forgive_v or_o be_v of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n or_o shall_v be_v save_v but_o if_o this_o be_v true_a then_o do_v not_o the_o jebusite_n believe_v that_o themselves_o shall_v rise_v again_o or_o appear_v in_o judgement_n further_o then_o can_v they_o not_o believe_v that_o pope_n clement_n or_o leo_n or_o paul_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n or_o that_o they_o be_v to_o subject_v themselves_o unto_o he_o or_o that_o this_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o such_o other_o particular_a proposition_n eight_o they_o teach_v that_o we_o be_v not_o justify_v by_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n or_o by_o imputation_n of_o christ_n righteousness_n but_o the_o apostle_n 1._o cor._n 1._o show_v that_o christ_n be_v make_v to_o
we_o justice_n wisdom_n sanctification_n and_o redemption_n and_o that_o abraham_n believe_v it_o be_v impute_v to_o he_o for_o righteousness_n the_o prophet_n isaias_n cap._n 53._o show_v that_o by_o his_o stripe_n we_o be_v heal_v 9_o they_o say_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o law_n and_o by_o the_o work_v there_o of_o but_o the_o apostle_n gal._n 3._o say_v it_o be_v manifest_a that_o no_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o the_o law_n before_o god_n and_o rom._n 4._o he_o show_v that_o abraham_n be_v not_o justify_v by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n do_v it_o not_o then_o manifest_o appear_v that_o these_o false_a apostle_n of_o antichrist_n teach_v doctrine_n contrary_a to_o the_o apostle_n and_o be_v not_o the_o child_n of_o abraham_n or_o partaker_n of_o his_o faith_n 10_o thomas_n aquinas_n 2.2_o q._n 4._o art_n 3._o teach_v that_o christian_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o confess_v their_o faith_n at_o all_o time_n and_o this_o his_o follower_n diligent_o practice_v that_o by_o their_o wicked_a teacher_n be_v teach_v to_o aequivocate_v and_o dissemble_v their_o faith_n and_o profession_n but_o true_a christian_n be_v always_o bold_o to_o profess_v their_o faith_n and_o to_o yield_v a_o reason_n of_o the_o same_o for_o this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n s_o peter_n who_o we_o be_v rather_o to_o credit_v than_o these_o false_a apostle_n 11_o for_o a_o lay_v man_n to_o dispute_v of_o matter_n of_o faith_n they_o count_v it_o mortal_a sin_n especial_o know_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v forbid_v the_o same_o under_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n as_o navarrus_n teach_v enchirid_a c._n 11._o but_o this_o show_v that_o papist_n do_v rather_o seek_v to_o suppress_v the_o faith_n then_o to_o teach_v matter_n of_o faith_n the_o same_o also_o appear_v for_o that_o they_o commend_v ignorance_n and_o thomas_n aquinas_n 2.2_o q._n 2._o art_n 6._o say_v that_o all_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o have_v explicit_a faith_n linwood_n in_o his_o gloss_n upon_o the_o constitution_n beginning_n ignorantia_fw-la de_fw-la summa_fw-la trinit_fw-la holdeth_z that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o lay_v man_n and_o simple_a people_n to_o believe_v the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n implicit_o or_o to_o believe_v as_o the_o catholic_a church_n believe_v and_o this_o be_v the_o faith_n that_o hosius_n commend_v in_o the_o collier_n but_o it_o show_v that_o our_o adversary_n seek_v to_o entertain_v the_o people_n in_o ignorance_n of_o matter_n of_o faith_n while_o the_o masspriest_n sport_n and_o entertain_v themselves_o with_o all_o delight_n and_o live_v idle_o reap_v the_o fruit_n of_o poor_a man_n labour_n 12_o thomas_n aquinas_n p._n 3._o q._n 7._o art_n 3._o deni_v that_o christ_n have_v faith_n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v make_v christ_n the_o author_n of_o our_o faith_n a_o pagan_a and_o a_o infidel_n further_o the_o same_o overthrow_v the_o popish_a definition_n of_o faith_n for_o either_o christ_n do_v not_o firm_o believe_v god_n word_n or_o else_o he_o have_v faith_n now_o to_o say_v that_o be_v plain_a blasphemy_n neither_o be_v that_o defence_n material_a that_o christ_n know_v all_o thing_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o hypostatical_a union_n of_o two_o nature_n in_o one_o person_n for_o that_o do_v not_o overthrow_v his_o humane_a nature_n nor_o hinder_v he_o for_o have_v faith_n without_o all_o imperfection_n final_o they_o teach_v that_o the_o pope_n only_o be_v to_o order_n and_o to_o publish_v the_o creed_n for_o that_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o thomas_n aquinas_n 2._o 2._o q._n 1._o art_n 10._o and_o the_o rest_n no_o question_n believe_v it_o but_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o overthrow_v not_o only_o the_o nicene_n and_o constantinopolitan_a confession_n but_o also_o the_o apostle_n creed_n and_o faith_n of_o christ_n for_o whatsoever_o face_n our_o adversary_n do_v set_v on_o matter_n they_o shall_v never_o show_v that_o these_o ancient_a creed_n do_v either_o depend_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o be_v by_o he_o order_v publish_v or_o confirm_v nay_o many_o pope_n we_o read_v of_o which_o for_o any_o thing_n we_o can_v understand_v do_v not_o believe_v the_o apostle_n creed_n upon_o this_o weak_a foundation_n of_o infidel_n pope_n the_o miserable_a papist_n do_v build_v their_o wind-shaken_a faith_n we_o do_v not_o therefore_o marvel_v if_o they_o rely_v more_o upon_o work_n than_o this_o faith_n and_o if_o they_o trust_v rather_o to_o be_v justify_v by_o good_a work_n than_o the_o pope_n erroneous_a faith_n but_o if_o they_o will_v consider_v what_o true_a faith_n be_v and_o how_o the_o same_o apply_v christ_n unto_o we_o and_o unit_v we_o unto_o he_o than_o will_v they_o abandon_v the_o error_n of_o popery_n of_o which_o we_o have_v give_v a_o taste_n in_o this_o article_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n chap._n v._o what_o papist_n do_v mean_a by_o the_o gospel_n the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o christian_n be_v the_o gladsome_a declaration_n of_o god_n favour_n offer_v to_o we_o through_o christ_n jesus_n and_o therefore_o the_o angel_n luc._n 2._o speak_v of_o the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n declare_v that_o he_o bring_v they_o tiding_n of_o great_a joy_n that_o shall_v be_v to_o all_o people_n but_o the_o papist_n by_o their_o new_a and_o strange_a doctrine_n do_v so_o confound_v the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n as_o if_o they_o seek_v to_o deprive_v christian_n of_o this_o joy_n and_o mean_v to_o alter_v the_o title_n of_o christ_n most_o joyful_a gospel_n for_o first_o as_o if_o christ_n have_v not_o be_v a_o saviour_n or_o a_o redeemer_n but_o a_o lawgiver_n that_o be_v to_o propound_v a_o new_a law_n wherewith_o christian_n be_v to_o be_v new_o charge_v they_o call_v the_o gospel_n the_o new_a law_n but_o neither_o be_v the_o law_n of_o moses_n contain_v in_o the_o two_o table_n abolish_v nor_o be_v it_o christ_n intention_n to_o surcharge_n his_o people_n with_o new_a law_n and_o new_a bond_n but_o to_o free_v they_o from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n and_o to_o redeem_v they_o as_o for_o the_o order_n concern_v sacrament_n we_o may_v not_o repute_v they_o to_o be_v proper_o law_n but_o mean_n and_o direction_n for_o the_o right_n apply_v of_o god_n grace_n unto_o christian_n further_o the_o new_a law_n that_o god_n speak_v of_o be_v write_v in_o man_n heart_n as_o we_o read_v hierem._n 31._o and_o heb._n 8._o but_o the_o law_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o the_o papist_n speak_v of_o be_v partly_o write_v in_o scripture_n and_o partly_o in_o decretales_fw-la the_o papist_n therefore_o make_v christ_n a_o new_a lawgiver_n do_v overthrow_v his_o covenant_n of_o grace_n second_o this_o new_a law_n or_o testament_n as_o they_o say_v be_v the_o love_n of_o god_n shed_v into_o our_o heart_n for_o so_o do_v bellarmine_n teach_v lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr verb._n dei_fw-la c._n 3._o but_o grant_v this_o and_o then_o the_o new_a testament_n do_v not_o include_v remission_n of_o sin_n for_o love_n be_v one_o thing_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n another_o but_o that_o the_o new_a testament_n do_v include_v remission_n of_o sin_n first_o our_o saviour_n do_v signify_v where_o he_o call_v the_o cup_n of_o thanksgiving_n the_o cup_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n for_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o chrysostome_n in_o 2._o cor._n 3._o and_o theodoret_n oecumenius_n and_o theophylact_n upon_o the_o same_o place_n direct_o affirm_v three_o thomas_n aquinas_n 1.2_o q._n 107._o art_n 4._o say_v that_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o new_a law_n or_o of_o the_o gospel_n as_o touch_v the_o inward_a work_n of_o virtue_n be_v more_o grievous_a than_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n quantum_fw-la ad_fw-la opera_fw-la virtutum_fw-la say_v he_o in_o actibus_fw-la interioribus_fw-la etc._n etc._n praeceptanovae_fw-la legis_fw-la sunt_fw-la graviora_fw-la this_o be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n math_n 11._o my_o yoke_n say_v he_o be_v easy_a and_o my_o burden_n light_n furthermore_o the_o same_o make_v the_o gospel_n not_o to_o be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o christian_a liberty_n and_o redemption_n but_o of_o bondage_n and_o greevance_n four_o the_o censurer_n of_o collein_n fol._n 204._o say_v that_o this_o be_v the_o proper_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n if_o thou_o will_v enter_v into_o life_n keep_v the_o commandment_n and_o with_o they_o in_o effect_n do_v bellarmine_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr verb._n dei_fw-la c._n 3._o consent_n where_o he_o say_v that_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v nothing_o but_o charity_n shed_v into_o our_o heart_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o this_o confound_v the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n for_o no_o man_n can_v deny_v but_o that_o charity_n be_v require_v by_o the_o law_n further_o the_o same_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o law_n say_v
christ_n humane_a nature_n as_o aquinas_n 3._o q._n 5._o art_n 2._o confess_v if_o he_o have_v take_v a_o heavenly_a body_n as_o valentine_n believe_v say_v aquinas_n then_o can_v not_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n humane_a nature_n have_v be_v save_v which_o require_v flesh_n and_o bone_n in_o the_o 24._o of_o luke_n our_o saviour_n show_v that_o he_o have_v a_o body_n that_o both_o have_v flesh_n and_o bone_n and_o be_v to_o be_v selt_z and_o see_v 31._o in_o their_o abominable_a mass_n they_o make_v their_o polshorne_a priest_n mediator_n for_o christ_n make_v they_o to_o pray_v that_o god_n will_v look_v upon_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n with_o a_o propitious_a and_o serene_a countenance_n supra_fw-la quae_fw-la say_v the_o priest_n look_v upon_o the_o sacrifice_n as_o they_o call_v it_o of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n propitio_fw-la ac_fw-la sereno_fw-la vultu_fw-la respacere_fw-la digneris_fw-la &_o accepta_fw-la habere_fw-la etc._n etc._n 32._o they_o compare_v also_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o brute_n beast_n offer_v by_o abel_n and_o to_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o melchisedech_n pray_v that_o god_n will_v accept_v christ_n body_n and_o blood_n as_o he_o accept_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o melchisedech_n and_o abel_n which_o be_v a_o most_o blasphemous_a comparison_n 33._o in_o the_o mass_n also_o they_o confess_v their_o sin_n to_o god_n to_o angel_n and_o saint_n joint_o and_o not_o to_o christ._n nay_o they_o use_v the_o mediation_n of_o christ_n in_o their_o confession_n of_o sin_n to_o angel_n and_o saint_n prefer_v they_o as_o much_o before_o christ_n as_o a_o prince_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o mediator_n and_o hushier_v 34._o in_o a_o certain_a provincial_a constitution_n beginning_n authoritate_fw-la de_fw-fr sentent_fw-fr excom_n they_o excommunicate_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n almighty_n and_o of_o saint_n and_o leave_v out_o christ_n 35._o they_o say_v mass_n in_o honour_n of_o angel_n and_o saint_n but_o he_o in_o who_o honour_n a_o sacrifice_n be_v offer_v be_v great_a than_o the_o sacrifice_n do_v it_o not_o then_o appear_v that_o while_o they_o pretend_v to_o offer_v christ_n body_n and_o blood_n in_o honour_n of_o angel_n and_o saint_n that_o they_o make_v he_o inferior_a to_o angel_n and_o saint_n 36._o they_o call_v the_o pope_n the_o head_n king_n spouse_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n but_o this_o can_v be_v without_o extreme_a wrong_n to_o christ_n for_o one_o king_n doom_n can_v admit_v two_o king_n nor_o a_o viceke_a while_n the_o king_n be_v present_a nor_o can_v one_o woman_n have_v two_o spouse_n or_o one_o body_n two_o head_n or_o one_o house_n two_o diverse_a foundation_n the_o apostle_n 1._o cor._n 3._o show_v that_o no_o man_n can_v lay_v other_o foundation_n then_o that_o which_o be_v already_o lay_v ephes_n 5._o he_o say_v christ_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n &_o the_o saviour_n of_o his_o body_n the_o synagogue_n of_o rome_n therefore_o show_v herself_o a_o strange_a beast_n that_o will_v needs_o have_v two_o head_n and_o two_o foundation_n be_v altogether_o so_o diverse_a 37._o s._n james_n show_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o lawgiver_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v able_a to_o save_v and_o destroy_v the_o do_v therefore_o spoil_v christ_n of_o his_o honour_n that_o give_v this_o title_n of_o lawgiver_n to_o the_o pope_n 38._o they_o do_v also_o prefer_v the_o pope_n before_o christ_n for_o christ_n body_n when_o the_o pope_n go_v on_o progress_n be_v send_v before_o with_o the_o baggage_n and_o when_o the_o pope_n be_v near_o go_v out_o to_o meet_v he_o while_o all_o the_o gallant_n of_o room_n attend_v on_o the_o pope_n 39_o they_o give_v authority_n to_o the_o pope_n to_o draw_v soul_n out_o of_o purgatory_n by_o his_o indulgence_n and_o to_o make_v portsale_n of_o christ_n merit_n but_o he_o that_o be_v sell_v be_v never_o equal_a to_o the_o seller_n neither_o can_v the_o papist_n show_v that_o ever_o christ_n deliver_v one_o soul_n out_o of_o purgatory_n 40._o papist_n believe_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v often_o time_n create_v his_o creator_n or_o at_o the_o least_o make_v christ_n body_n and_o blood_n but_o that_o christ_n make_v the_o pope_n it_o can_v be_v show_v do_v it_o not_o then_o appear_v that_o by_o many_o degree_n the_o pope_n excel_v christ_n in_o the_o opinion_n of_o papist_n 41._o nay_o they_o make_v s._n francis_n and_o dominicke_n equal_a to_o christ_n in_o diverse_a thing_n and_o in_o some_o thing_n superior_a as_o their_o book_n of_o conformity_n and_o legend_n do_v testify_v they_o call_v s._n francis_n jesum_fw-la typicum_fw-la that_o be_v a_o figurative_a jesus_n and_o say_v that_o dominicke_n and_o francis_n do_v more_o miracle_n than_o christ_n but_o the_o pope_n give_v both_o these_o two_o all_o their_o credit_n he_o must_v therefore_o needs_o surpass_v christ_n in_o account_n of_o papist_n 42._o in_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n cornelius_n bishop_n of_o bitonto_n say_v papa_n lux_fw-la venit_fw-la in_o mundum_fw-la the_o pope_n the_o light_n come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o simon_n begnius_n in_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n call_v leo_n the_o ten_o the_o lion_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n and_o cry_v out_o te_fw-la leo_fw-la beatissime_fw-la saluatorem_fw-la expectavimus_fw-la that_o be_v we_o bless_a leo_n have_v look_v for_o thou_o our_o saviour_n 43._o beno_n the_o cardinal_n show_v that_o gregory_n the_o seven_o cast_v christ_n body_n into_o the_o fire_n burn_v the_o saviour_n of_o papist_n pius_fw-la the_o five_o also_o be_v say_v to_o have_v cast_v a_o agnus_fw-la dei_fw-la into_o the_o fire_n as_o catena_n in_o his_o life_n report_v into_o this_o contempt_n have_v the_o pupist_n bring_v their_o god_n 44_o theodorie_n à_fw-la niem_fw-la lib._n primo_fw-la de_fw-la schismate_fw-la show_v that_o vrbane_n the_o pope_n melt_v cross_n and_o image_n of_o silver_n to_o pay_v soldier_n thus_o that_o which_o they_o pretend_v to_o honour_v as_o god_n they_o sell_v and_o give_v away_o in_o service_n of_o the_o devil_n 45_o they_o give_v equal_a honour_n to_o a_o cross_n of_o wood_n and_o mettle_n and_o to_o christ_n and_o look_v on_o a_o wooden_a crucifixo_fw-la they_o say_v thou_o have_v redeem_v us._n who_o then_o see_v not_o what_o little_a account_n they_o make_v of_o christ_n 46_o a_o trental_a of_o mass_n the_o masspriest_n sell_v for_o less_o sometime_o than_o six_o penny_n and_o yet_o they_o say_v christ_n body_n be_v offer_v in_o every_o mass_n be_v they_o not_o therefore_o more_o wicked_a traitor_n than_o judas_n who_o will_v not_o fell_v christ_n for_o less_o than_o 30._o penny_n 47_o the_o priesthood_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n be_v proper_a to_o christ_n by_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n but_o the_o papist_n make_v every_o pilled_a pated_a companion_n a_o priest_n after_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n final_o the_o office_n of_o mediator_n proper_o belong_v to_o christ_n they_o communicate_v with_o the_o virgin_n mary_n who_o they_o suppose_v to_o be_v more_o merciful_a than_o christ_n they_o give_v it_o also_o to_o angel_n and_o saint_n and_o masspriest_n turrecremata_fw-la summae_fw-la lib._n 1._o c._n 40._o speak_v of_o priest_n say_v they_o be_v mediator_n reconcile_a sinner_n to_o god_n ministerium_fw-la peragunt_fw-la mediatoris_fw-la omnipotenti_fw-la deo_fw-la qui_fw-la offensus_fw-la fuerat_fw-la peccatores_fw-la reconciliando_fw-la the_o schoolman_n say_v also_o that_o saint_n may_v be_v call_v redeemer_n and_o that_o be_v confess_v by_o bellarmine_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-la indulgentijs_fw-la infinite_a it_o be_v to_o report_v all_o the_o blasphemous_a speech_n and_o practice_n of_o papist_n against_o the_o honour_n of_o christ_n jesus_n but_o this_o may_v serve_v to_o show_v that_o they_o rather_o blaspheme_v than_o honour_n christ_n speak_v so_o wicked_o of_o his_o person_n so_o blasphemous_o of_o his_o body_n so_o false_o of_o his_o action_n and_o take_v away_o his_o honour_n and_o give_v the_o same_o to_o other_o chap._n vii_o the_o strange_a contradictory_n and_o false_a opinion_n of_o papist_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n as_o sacrament_n be_v seal_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o holy_a mystery_n by_o the_o which_o god_n work_v our_o sanctification_n so_o be_v they_o enemy_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o the_o sanctification_n of_o christian_n that_o pervert_v the_o apostle_n doctrine_n and_o christ_n institution_n concern_v sacrament_n how_o then_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o synagogue_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o excuse_v themselves_o and_o to_o prove_v themselves_o not_o to_o be_v envious_a of_o the_o good_a of_o christian_n i_o report_v i_o to_o their_o common_a doctrine_n and_o practice_v concern_v this_o argument_n for_o first_o they_o deny_v that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n do_v open_a heaven_n and_o thereupon_o thrust_v all_o the_o
administer_a of_o the_o sacrament_n intentio_fw-la ministri_fw-la say_v he_o requiritur_fw-la ad_fw-la perfectionem_fw-la sacramenti_fw-la and_o this_o be_v so_o necessary_o require_v by_o all_o papist_n in_o consecration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n that_o without_o the_o same_o they_o say_v there_o be_v no_o consecration_n the_o be_v then_o and_o perfection_n of_o sacrament_n depend_v upon_o the_o priest_n intention_n it_o follow_v that_o the_o state_n of_o thing_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n will_v be_v bring_v to_o very_o great_a uncerteinty_a for_o neither_o can_v it_o be_v prove_v that_o he_o that_o order_v the_o pope_n have_v a_o intention_n to_o order_v he_o or_o that_o the_o romish_a priest_n have_v a_o intention_n always_o to_o baptize_v and_o consecrate_v or_o the_o party_n among_o they_o that_o do_v marry_fw-mi do_v intend_v any_o such_o matter_n how_o then_o can_v the_o papist_n be_v assure_v that_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n or_o that_o the_o pope_n judgement_n be_v infallible_a or_o whether_o they_o be_v idolater_n or_o no_o when_o they_o worship_v the_o sacrament_n when_o they_o be_v uncerteine_a whether_o the_o pope_n be_v either_o well_o order_v or_o baptize_v or_o whether_o their_o priest_n be_v well_o order_v and_o have_v true_o consecrate_v the_o eucharist_n 9_o the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n lib._n 4._o do_v 3._o §_o ex_fw-la his_fw-la determine_v that_o true_a baptism_n be_v administer_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n only_o or_o the_o father_n only_o or_o the_o holy_a ghost_n only_o ex_fw-la his_fw-la apertè_fw-la intellexisti_fw-la say_v he_o in_o nomine_fw-la christ_n verum_fw-la baptisma_fw-la tradi_fw-la unde_fw-la nihilominus_fw-la insinuari_fw-la videtur_fw-la verum_fw-la baptisma_fw-la dari_fw-la posse_fw-la in_o nomine_fw-la patris_fw-la tantùm_fw-la vel_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la tantùm_fw-la si_fw-la tamen_fw-la ille_fw-la qui_fw-la baptizat_fw-la sidem_fw-la trinitatis_fw-la teneat_fw-la but_o this_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o every_o priest_n may_v alter_v christ_n institution_n and_o that_o their_o own_o order_n and_o rite_n be_v not_o to_o be_v alter_v thomas_n aquinas_n 3._o p._n q._n 66._o art_n 6._o do_v condemn_v his_o master_n opinion_n 10._o thomas_n aquinas_n 3._o p._n q._n 66._o art_n 4._o determine_v that_o christian_n may_v be_v baptize_v in_o lie_n or_o in_o beef_n broth_n or_o porridge_n in_o lixivio_fw-la &_o aquis_fw-la sulphureis_n sieri_fw-la potest_fw-la baptismus_fw-la he_o say_v also_o the_o water_n be_v not_o change_v by_o boil_a flesh_n in_o it_o do_v we_o then_o marvel_v if_o masspriest_n be_v so_o fat_a christian_n see_v they_o allow_v baptism_n in_o lie_n and_o beef_n broth_n this_o certes_o be_v far_o from_o the_o decency_n that_o be_v require_v in_o the_o administration_n of_o holy_a mystery_n and_o savour_v of_o strange_a curiosity_n hereto_o also_o may_v be_v add_v that_o they_o baptize_v bell_n and_o give_v they_o name_n and_o this_o the_o germane_a touch_n in_o their_o grievance_n 11._o vrbane_n the_o pope_n c._n super_fw-la quo_fw-la 30._o q._n 3._o give_v that_o authority_n to_o woman_n which_o all_o papist_n allow_v not_o the_o father_n certes_o neither_o know_v it_o nor_o allow_v it_o 12._o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n sess_v 7._o pronounce_v he_o anathema_n that_o shall_v say_v that_o baptism_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o this_o fall_v on_o thomas_n aquinas_n 3._o q._n 68_o art_n 2._o that_o suppose_v it_o sufficient_a to_o have_v baptism_n in_o voto_fw-la &_o those_o which_o allow_v baptism_n as_o well_o of_o blood_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o of_o water_n the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n think_v it_o all_o one_o to_o say_v that_o baptism_n be_v not_o necessary_a and_o that_o baptism_n be_v free_a as_o if_o man_n not_o sin_v necessary_o have_v not_o free_a will_n to_o commit_v sin_n 13._o martin_n ab_fw-la aspilcueta_fw-la in_o enchir_n c._n de_fw-fr baptismo_fw-la say_v he_o do_v sin_n that_o anoint_v he_o that_o be_v baptize_v with_o chrism_n keep_v over_o the_o year_n of_o which_o sin_n neither_o the_o apostle_n nor_o ancient_a father_n ever_o hear_v any_o thing_n 14._o kellison_n in_o his_o survey_v do_v not_o take_v they_o to_o be_v perfect_a christian_n that_o be_v not_o confirm_v after_o his_o popish_a fashion_n but_o this_o fashion_n of_o grease_v be_v never_o know_v to_o the_o ancient_a father_n furthermore_o this_o be_v grant_v the_o papist_n in_o england_n shall_v be_v very_o imperfect_a christian_n the_o most_o of_o they_o want_v this_o suppose_a unctuous_a consignation_n 15._o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n they_o say_v may_v be_v administer_v not_o only_o by_o priest_n but_o also_o by_o layman_n and_o woman_n but_o they_o do_v not_o permit_v any_o to_o consign_v man_n with_o chrism_n but_o their_o prelate_n and_o for_o that_o they_o bring_v forth_o the_o testimony_n of_o euscbius_n a_o bishop_n of_o rome_n de_fw-mi consecrat_fw-mi do_v 5._o manus_fw-la so_o sarre_o do_v they_o prefer_v their_o own_o invention_n before_o christ_n institution_n and_o so_o little_o be_v they_o ashamed_a to_o allege_v counter_n fait_fw-fr writing_n 16._o whether_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o cucharist_n be_v one_o or_o more_o sacrament_n they_o stand_v in_o doubt_n because_o in_o a_o certain_a collect_v the_o same_o be_v both_o call_v sacramentum_fw-la and_o sacramenta_fw-la and_o thomas_n aquinas_n 3._o q._n 73._o art_n 2._o resolve_v that_o it_o be_v one_o formal_o and_o two_o material_o so_o that_o material_o he_o make_v more_o than_o seven_o sacrament_n 17._o in_o this_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n they_o require_v bread_n of_o wheat_n and_o wine_n of_o the_o grape_n as_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o yet_o they_o say_v neither_o bread_n nor_o wine_n remain_v therein_o after_o consecration_n 18._o they_o say_v christ_n body_n be_v true_o in_o the_o host_n and_o his_o blood_n in_o the_o chalice_n after_o consecration_n and_o yet_o be_v he_o neither_o feel_v nor_o see_v there_o nor_o can_v a_o body_n of_o that_o quantity_n be_v contain_v in_o so_o little_a room_n 19_o thomas_n aquinas_n 3._o p._n q._n 75._o art_n 3._o will_v not_o grant_v that_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v annihilate_v after_o consecration_n as_o if_o there_o can_v at_o one_o time_n be_v no_o bread_n nor_o wine_n in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o yet_o no_o annihilation_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n or_o as_o if_o no_o part_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v it_o may_v not_o be_v say_v proper_o to_o be_v bring_v to_o nothing_o 20._o franciscus_n a_o victoria_fw-la in_o his_o book_n of_o sacrament_n c._n de_fw-la eucharistia_fw-la will_v not_o yield_v that_o the_o priest_n may_v consecrate_v barley_n bread_n because_o barley_n as_o he_o say_v be_v meat_n for_o horse_n but_o he_o say_v that_o rye_n bread_n may_v well_o be_v consecrate_v forasmuch_o as_o that_o be_v bread_n for_o man_n yet_o other_o think_v otherwise_o 21._o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n we_o see_v remain_v in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o they_o can_v tell_v how_o they_o shall_v subsist_v where_o there_o be_v neither_o bread_n nor_o wine_n 22._o christ_n ordain_v this_o sacrament_n to_o be_v eat_v and_o drunken_a but_o the_o papist_n oftentimes_o neither_o eat_v nor_o drink_v the_o sacrament_n but_o carry_v it_o about_o or_o hang_v it_o upon_o the_o altar_n 23._o if_o a_o mouse_n or_o other_o live_a creature_n take_v away_o the_o consecrate_a host_n they_o will_v have_v the_o same_o to_o be_v take_v if_o it_o be_v possible_a and_o to_o be_v burn_v and_o the_o ash_n to_o be_v keep_v for_o relic_n as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o treatise_n de_fw-fr defect_n in_o celebrat_n miss_v 24._o they_o beleene_n that_o christ_n body_n be_v in_o the_o eucharist_n because_o christ_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n why_o then_o do_v they_o believe_v that_o his_o soul_n and_o blood_n be_v there_o see_v he_o speak_v there_o of_o neither_o 25._o in_o the_o sacrament_n they_o tell_v how_o sometime_o there_o have_v appear_v true_a flesh_n true_a blond_n and_o christ_n in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o child_n but_o if_o this_o be_v true_a then_o be_v he_o not_o there_o as_o they_o hold_v sub_fw-la specie_fw-la aliena_fw-la that_o be_v under_o another_o kind_n 26._o thomas_n aquinas_n 3._o p._n q._n 77._o art_n 2._o will_v have_v other_o accident_n to_o be_v sound_v in_o quantity_n as_o in_o their_o subject_n but_o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o make_v one_o accident_n the_o subject_n of_o another_o and_o yet_o do_v this_o absurdity_n be_v grant_v little_o relieve_v they_o for_o they_o can_v show_v how_o the_o accident_n of_o quantity_n shall_v subsist_v without_o subject_n 27._o they_o say_v that_o accident_n in_o the_o sacrament_n due_a nourish_v but_o of_o that_o it_o follow_v that_o accident_n be_v turn_v into_o substance_n which_o be_v more_o than_o alchymisticall_a tran●…_n 〈◊〉_d 28._o in_o the_o sacrament_n they_o see_v by_o experience_n
respuunt_fw-la they_o believe_v not_o also_o that_o child_n die_v young_a shall_v possess_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o do_v not_o all_o sect_n of_o monk_n and_o friar_n among_o the_o papist_n exclude_v marry_v folk_n out_o of_o their_o cloister_n do_v not_o the_o masspriest_n also_o exclude_v all_o child_n die_v before_o baptism_n yea_o where_o it_o be_v much_o desire_v out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n 33._o priscillian_n say_v augustine_n haeres_fw-la 70._o disjoin_v marry_v folk_n his_o word_n be_v coniuges_fw-la disiungens_fw-la his_o follower_n to_o hide_v their_o filthy_a opinion_n and_o beastliness_n make_v no_o account_n to_o forswear_v themselves_o propter_fw-la occultandas_fw-la contaminationes_fw-la &_o turpitudines_fw-la svas_fw-la habent_fw-la in_o suis_fw-la dogmatibus_fw-la iura_fw-la periura_fw-la secretum_fw-la prodere_fw-la noli_fw-la they_o refuse_v also_o to_o eat_v flesh_n as_o unclean_a meat_n and_o come_v not_o the_o papist_n near_o they_o in_o these_o point_n that_o separate_a monk_n and_o priest_n that_o do_v marry_v from_o their_o wife_n and_o teach_v their_o scholar_n to_o forswear_v themselves_o the_o rhemiste_n in_o act._n 23._o say_v that_o oath_n take_v against_o papist_n which_o they_o false_o call_v catholic_n may_v and_o must_v be_v break_v under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n this_o perjury_n be_v also_o allow_v by_o 2._o rinegued_a english_a traitor_n allen_n and_o parson_n in_o their_o resolution_n of_o case_n of_o conscience_n wherein_o they_o teach_v their_o scholar_n to_o play_v the_o villain_n and_o to_o perjure_v themselves_o with_o a_o good_a popish_a conscience_n the_o carthusian_n also_o and_o diverse_a monk_n forswear_v eat_v flesh_n which_o they_o can_v do_v in_o reason_n but_o that_o they_o think_v it_o less_o clean_a than_o fish_n 34._o the_o helcesaites_n make_v christ_n in_o heaven_n to_o differ_v from_o christ_n on_o earth_n as_o theodoret._n de_fw-fr haeret_fw-la fab_n c._n de_fw-fr helcesaeis_n do_v testify_v christum_fw-la non_fw-la unum_fw-la dicunt_fw-la say_v he_o say_v hune_v quidem_fw-la supernè_fw-la illum_fw-la infernè_fw-la so_fw-ge papist_n above_o make_n christ_n visible_a and_o palpable_a but_o in_o the_o sacrament_n neither_o visible_a nor_o palpable_a 35._o the_o eutychianistes_n deny_v that_o christ_n after_o the_o union_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n have_v a_o true_a body_n but_o as_o leo_n signify_v ser_n 6._o de_fw-la teiumo_fw-la 7._o mensis_fw-la a_o body_n without_o shape_n dimension_n or_o circumscription_n they_o say_v also_o that_o christ_n be_v both_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n at_o one_o time_n against_o who_o vigilius_n dispute_v lib._n 4._o contr_n eutych_n c._n 4._o say_v that_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n when_o it_o be_v on_o earth_n be_v not_o in_o heaven_n and_o be_v now_o in_o heaven_n be_v not_o on_o earth_n and_o these_o point_n of_o eutychianisme_n the_o papist_n have_v retain_v for_o they_o say_v christ_n body_n be_v real_o in_o the_o eucharist_n where_o no_o shape_n nor_o dimension_n of_o a_o body_n do_v appear_v they_o say_v also_o that_o christ_n body_n be_v both_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n at_o one_o time_n which_o take_v away_o all_o circumscription_n from_o christ_n body_n and_o be_v contrary_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o vigilius_n theodoret_n also_o dial._n 2._o do_v refute_v this_o heresy_n by_o similitude_n of_o the_o eucharist_n for_o that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n remain_v in_o the_o sacrament_n after_o consecration_n 36._o the_o papist_n also_o in_o many_o point_n conspire_v with_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n grace_n the_o pelagian_n augustine_n de_fw-fr haeres_fw-la c._n 88_o say_v that_o they_o hold_v that_o without_o grace_n a_o man_n may_v perform_v all_o god_n commandment_n and_o bellarmine_n the_o great_a &_o lib._n arb_n lib._n 5._o c._n 5._o &_o 9_o have_v these_o word_n solis_fw-la naturae_fw-la viribus_fw-la posse_fw-la aliquem_fw-la ad_fw-la brevissi●un_fw-la tempus_fw-la omne_fw-la sernare_fw-la scilicet_fw-la divina_fw-la mandata_fw-la he_o shift_v off_o the_o matter_n by_o add_v quoad_fw-la substantiam_fw-la operis_fw-la but_o the_o pelagiani_n no_o doubt_n be_v press_v will_v say_v so_o much_o nay_o if_o man_n have_v freewill_n as_o well_o to_o observe_v the_o law_n as_o to_o break_v the_o same_o then_o must_v he_o needs_o be_v able_a always_o to_o perform_v all_o the_o law_n by_o force_n of_o his_o freewill_n the_o pelagian_o believe_v that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v without_o all_o sin_n so_o likewise_o do_v the_o papist_n in_o effect_n for_o they_o say_v that_o every_o man_n have_v freewill_n to_o abstain_v from_o all_o sin_n and_o bellarmme_n lib._n 4._o the_o iustific_a c._n 11._o say_v that_o man_n be_v able_a to_o perform_v the_o law_n of_o god_n perfect_o of_o which_o it_o follow_v necessary_o that_o he_o may_v be_v without_o sin_n for_o he_o that_o perform_v the_o law_n of_o god_n perfect_o be_v without_o all_o sin_n they_o teach_v that_o concupiscence_n by_o baptism_n be_v sanctify_v and_o be_v before_o evil_n do_v afterward_o begin_v not_o to_o be_v evil_a as_o may_v be_v collect_v out_o of_o s._n augustine_n lib._n 6._o contr_n inlianum_fw-la c._n 6._o and_o their_o argument_n be_v for_o that_o the_o guilt_n of_o concupiscence_n be_v remoove_v by_o baptism_n the_o papist_n also_o hold_v that_o concupiscence_n after_o baptisine_n be_v no_o sin_n and_o of_o this_o it_o follow_v that_o concupiscence_n be_v sanctify_v by_o baptism_n the_o pelagian_o say_v that_o we_o have_v a_o strong_a and_o firm_a freewill_n not_o to_o sin_n and_o the_o censurer_n of_o colein_n and_o bellarmine_n in_o diverse_a place_n affirm_v that_o sin_n be_v subject_a to_o our_o will_n and_o that_o man_n by_o freewill_n have_v power_n to_o do_v good_a and_o to_o abstain_v from_o evil_a he_o that_o listen_v to_o fee_v diverse_a other_o point_n of_o concordance_n between_o papist_n and_o pelagian_o let_v he_o read_v my_o last_o challenge_n andradius_fw-la handle_v the_o point_n of_o freewill_n say_v that_o philosopher_n by_o force_n of_o their_o freewill_n be_v able_a to_o attain_v true_a faith_n and_o justice_n by_o which_o they_o may_v be_v save_v do_v not_o then_o papist_n come_v near_a pelagian_n 37._o the_o donatist_n as_o s._n augustine_n say_v haeres_fw-la 69._o believe_v that_o christ_n church_n be_v confine_v in_o africa_n and_o remain_v in_o the_o faction_n of_o donatus_n quod_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la christian_n africa_n &_o donati_n parte_fw-la remanserit_fw-la they_o rebaptise_v also_o catholic_a christian_n the_o papist_n likewise_o confine_v the_o church_n within_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o rome_n and_o saction_n of_o the_o pope_n they_o presume_v also_o to_o rebaptize_v better_a christian_n then_o themselves_o 38._o as_o the_o circumcellion_n so_o the_o papist_n think_v it_o meritorious_a to_o kill_v all_o that_o be_v opposite_a to_o their_o sect_n as_o the_o practice_n of_o pius_n the_o five_o sixtus_n the_o five_o and_o other_o pope_n against_o queen_n elizabeth_n the_o french_a king_n henry_n the_o three_o and_o four_o prince_n maurice_n and_o diverse_a other_o christian_a king_n and_o prince_n the_o massacre_n of_o france_n and_o flanders_n do_v show_v sixtus_n quintus_fw-la do_v commend_v the_o execrable_a murder_n commit_v by_o james_n clement_n a_o dominican_n friar_n john_n ghineard_n a_o jebusite_n be_v hang_v for_o maintain_v the_o bloody_a doctrine_n of_o murder_a prince_n excommunicate_a by_o the_o pope_n 39_o sigebertus_n gemblacensis_fw-la do_v account_v it_o a_o heresy_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v assoil_v subject_n from_o their_o obedience_n or_o excommunicate_a such_o as_o will_v not_o rebel_v against_o prince_n haresis_fw-la say_v he_o pestilentissima_fw-la populum_fw-la percellit_fw-la yet_o this_o heresy_n do_v papist_n maintain_v both_o by_o their_o doctrine_n and_o practice_v 40._o the_o audean_o or_o anthropomorphite_n do_v imagine_v god_n to_o have_v a_o shape_n and_o figure_n like_o to_o a_o man_n which_o if_o the_o papist_n do_v not_o believe_v then_o why_o do_v they_o worship_v god_n the_o father_n in_o the_o similitude_n of_o a_o old_a man_n and_o if_o this_o be_v not_o the_o likeness_n of_o god_n but_o of_o a_o apparition_n why_o do_v they_o give_v god_n honour_n to_o their_o own_o fancy_n 41._o origens_n heresy_n be_v that_o he_o believe_v that_o the_o damn_a might_n in_o the_o end_n be_v save_v as_o augustine_n de_fw-fr haeres_fw-la c._n 43._o show_v from_o this_o they_o digress_v not_o far_o that_o believe_v that_o traiaus_n soul_n be_v fetch_v out_o of_o hell_n by_o the_o prayer_n of_o gregory_n furthermore_o if_o purgarorie_n be_v in_o hell_n why_o may_v not_o soul_n as_o well_o be_v fetch_v out_o of_o other_o part_n as_o that_o part_n of_o hell_n 42._o eunomius_n teach_v that_o so_o a_o man_n be_v of_o his_o religion_n it_o skill_a not_o great_o what_o sin_n he_o commit_v asseverabat_fw-la say_v s._n augustine_n de_fw-fr haeres_fw-la c._n 54._o quod_fw-la nihl_fw-ge cviquam_fw-la obesset_fw-la quorumlibet_fw-la perpetratio_fw-la ac_fw-la perseverantia_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la
therefore_o think_v that_o either_o the_o christian_n there_o make_v the_o image_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o else_o worship_v and_o burn_v incense_n to_o they_o and_o very_o absurd_a it_o be_v if_o any_o man_n shall_v suppose_v that_o the_o popish_a invocation_n and_o worship_n of_o saint_n and_o angel_n be_v to_o be_v prove_v by_o their_o practice_n philo_z in_o legate_n ad_fw-la caium_fw-la say_v the_o jew_n think_v it_o impious_a either_o in_o picture_n or_o grave_v work_n to_o represent_v god_n that_o be_v invisible_a invisibilem_fw-la deum_fw-la pingere_fw-la aut_fw-la singere_fw-la nefas_fw-la duxerunt_fw-la maiores_fw-la nostri_fw-la say_v he_o neither_o if_o we_o run_v through_o the_o bible_n shall_v we_o find_v any_o precedent_n of_o the_o popish_a invocation_n and_o worship_n of_o saint_n use_v in_o the_o romish_a church_n final_o if_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n have_v know_v or_o suspect_v that_o s._n peter_n or_o his_o successor_n have_v be_v design_v christ_n vicar_n general_n and_o monarch_n of_o the_o church_n and_o appoint_v to_o give_v law_n to_o the_o whole_a world_n then_o will_v they_o never_o have_v suffer_v he_o to_o depart_v from_o jerusalem_n the_o pope_n and_o his_o complice_n therefore_o must_v seek_v some_o other_o place_n than_o jerusalem_n whence_o to_o derive_v their_o doctrine_n law_n ceremony_n and_o form_n of_o government_n or_o else_o they_o will_v never_o find_v out_o the_o true_a descent_n of_o their_o church_n in_o babylon_n certes_o they_o shall_v rather_o find_v out_o these_o matter_n than_o in_o jerusalem_n chap._n xii_o that_o popish_a religion_n be_v never_o teach_v either_o by_o the_o old_a prophet_n or_o by_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n jesus_n faithful_a christian_n as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o ephes_n 2._o be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n jesus_n christ_n himself_o be_v the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n and_o this_o the_o papist_n must_v needs_o confess_v although_o much_o to_o their_o grief_n unless_o they_o will_v deny_v the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o popery_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o pope_n and_o upon_o his_o decretales_fw-la and_o determination_n and_o support_v stout_o by_o his_o purple_a cardinal_n and_o the_o merchant_n of_o babylon_n the_o masspriest_n and_o neither_o upon_o christ_n nor_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n the_o apostle_n 2._o tim._n 3._o show_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v able_a to_o make_v we_o wise_a to_o salvation_n and_o be_v give_v of_o god_n that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n may_v be_v absolute_a and_o make_v perfect_a unto_o all_o good_a work_n but_o papist_n teach_v that_o they_o be_v a_o imperfect_a rule_n and_o without_o tradition_n unsufficient_a for_o that_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o bellarmine_n and_o all_o his_o consort_n they_o do_v also_o rail_v against_o holy_a scripture_n and_o call_v they_o a_o dead_a and_o kill_a letter_n the_o holy_a prophet_n bring_v no_o message_n to_o those_o nation_n to_o who_o they_o be_v send_v but_o they_o confirm_v the_o same_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o god_n that_o send_v they_o say_v thus_o say_v the_o lord_n and_o the_o lord_n have_v speak_v it_o but_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n confirm_v their_o doctrine_n by_o their_o own_o pleasure_n for_o the_o most_o part_n and_o albeit_o sometime_o the_o same_o allege_v scripture_n yet_o their_o best_a and_o common_a argument_n be_v placet_fw-la nobis_fw-la their_o school_n doctor_n also_o for_o matter_n controverse_v do_v more_o common_o allege_v the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la than_o holy_a scripture_n rom._n 10._o we_o read_v that_o faith_n come_v by_o hear_v and_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o camsius_fw-la in_o his_o catechism_n the_o sid_n &_o symb_n signify_v that_o we_o be_v not_o to_o believe_v god_n word_n reveal_v unless_o the_o same_o be_v also_o propound_v by_o the_o church_n and_o by_o the_o church_n he_o understand_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o adherent_n peter_n and_o john_n act._n 4._o show_n that_o god_n be_v rather_o to_o be_v obey_v then_o man_n but_o the_o romish_a church_n do_v excommunicate_v all_o that_o harken_v not_o to_o the_o pope_n whatsoever_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o the_o contrary_n the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n sess_n 4._o teach_v we_o that_o we_o be_v to_o embrace_v tradition_n not_o write_v with_o equal_a affection_n to_o tradition_n and_o holy_a scripture_n but_o this_o doctrine_n be_v not_o know_v either_o to_o the_o apostle_n or_o prophet_n nay_o moses_n do_v teach_v quite_o contrary_a you_o shall_v put_v nothing_o to_o the_o word_n which_o i_o command_v you_o nor_o shall_v you_o take_v aught_o therefrom_o say_v he_o deut._n 4._o and_o s._n paul_n galat._n 1._o if_o any_o man_n preach_v unto_o you_o otherwise_o than_o that_o you_o have_v receive_v say_v he_o let_v he_o be_v accurse_v this_o curse_n therefore_o do_v fall_v on_o the_o friar_n and_o mass_n priest_n that_o preach_v the_o pope_n doctrine_n which_o they_o shall_v never_o prove_v to_o have_v be_v receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n though_o they_o read_v until_o their_o eye_n drop_v out_o of_o their_o head_n the_o religion_n of_o papist_n do_v for_o the_o most_o part_n consist_v in_o prayer_n to_o saint_n mass_n and_o office_n in_o the_o honour_n of_o angel_n the_o virgin_n mary_n martyr_n confessor_n and_o the_o pope_n canonize_a creature_n in_o erect_v of_o cross_n and_o crucifix_n and_o other_o image_n in_o burn_a incense_n before_o image_n nay_o they_o give_v divine_a honour_n to_o creature_n which_o themselves_n can_v deny_v to_o be_v idolatrous_a cum_fw-la christus_fw-la adoretur_fw-la adoratione_n latriae_fw-la consequens_fw-la est_fw-la quòd_fw-la cius_fw-la imago_fw-la sit_fw-la adoratione_n latriae_fw-la adoranda_fw-la see_v christ_n say_v thomas_n aquinas_n p._n 3._o q._n 25._o art_n 3._o be_v worship_v with_o latria_fw-la or_o honour_n proper_o belong_v to_o god_n it_o follow_v that_o his_o image_n be_v also_o to_o be_v worship_v with_o the_o adoration_n of_o latria_fw-la or_o divine_a worship_n either_o therefore_o must_v our_o adversary_n show_n that_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n offer_v sacrifice_n in_o honour_n of_o angel_n and_o saint_n and_o make_v prayer_n unto_o they_o and_o set_v up_o image_n to_o be_v worship_v in_o temple_n and_o use_v to_o burn_v incense_n unto_o they_o and_o to_o honour_v they_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o papist_n or_o else_o they_o must_v confess_v that_o their_o religion_n proceed_v not_o from_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n how_o hard_o this_o proof_n will_v be_v it_o may_v appear_v in_o this_o that_o god_n law_n deut._n 4._o and_o exod._n 20._o direct_o forbid_v the_o make_n of_o grave_a image_n after_o the_o likeness_n of_o god_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o idol_n and_o christ_n ordain_v the_o eucharist_n to_o be_v receive_v in_o commemoration_n of_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n and_o never_o so_o much_o as_o mention_v the_o offering_n of_o his_o own_o body_n and_o blood_n or_o other_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o honour_n of_o saint_n and_o angel_n the_o masspriest_n that_o plot_v the_o ruin_n of_o religion_n at_o trent_n sess_v 6._o ascribe_v man_n justification_n to_o his_o work_n and_o exclude_v justification_n both_o by_o christ_n justice_n and_o by_o faith_n apprehend_v christ_n and_o believe_v in_o he_o but_o both_o the_o prophet_n abacuc_n chap._n 2._o and_o s._n paul_n rom._n 1._o affirm_v that_o the_o just_a do_v live_v by_o faith_n the_o apostle_n also_o 1._o cor._n 1._o say_v that_o our_o saour_n christ_n be_v make_v wisdom_n and_o righteousness_n unto_o us._n which_o if_o it_o be_v wrought_v by_o our_o work_n than_o shall_v we_o have_v be_v make_v wisdom_n and_o righteousness_n unto_o ourselves_o nay_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 3._o say_v if_o abraham_n be_v justify_v by_o work_n that_o then_o he_o have_v wherein_o to_o rejoice_v but_o not_o with_o god_n popish_a religion_n consist_v most_o in_o external_a ceremony_n as_o for_o example_n in_o salt_n holy_a water_n holy_a candle_n incense_n ring_v of_o sacring_a bell_n adore_v cross_n and_o image_n grease_v of_o sick_a man_n and_o masspriest_n shave_v of_o crown_n vow_n monkish_a rule_n and_o such_o like_a toy_n but_o these_o foolery_n be_v never_o know_v either_o to_o the_o apostle_n or_o prophet_n nay_o our_o saviour_n matth._n 15._o teach_v that_o in_o vain_a they_o seek_v to_o worship_n god_n that_o teach_v for_o doctrine_n the_o precept_n of_o man_n he_o show_v also_o john_n 4._o that_o true_a worshipper_n worship_n god_n in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n and_o the_o apostle_n coloss_n 2._o condemn_v such_o as_o put_v religion_n in_o touch_v fast_v and_o such_o like_a vain_a ceremony_n the_o masspriest_n call_v the_o pope_n the_o spouse_n and_o head_n of_o the_o church_n but_o if_o he_o mean_v to_o derive_v his_o authority_n from_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o
apostle_n he_o shall_v declare_v himself_o to_o want_v both_o head_n and_o brain_n for_o in_o the_o canticle_n c._n 2._o and_o ephes_n 5._o the_o title_n of_o spouse_n of_o the_o church_n be_v declare_v to_o belong_v to_o christ_n and_o he_o only_o the_o scripture_n declare_v to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n gregory_n lib._n 4._o ep_n 38._o ad_fw-la joan._n constantinopol_n show_v that_o neither_o paul_n nor_o andrew_n nor_o john_n nor_o peter_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n but_o all_o member_n of_o the_o church_n under_o one_o head_n the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n do_v teach_v we_o that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n consist_v of_o sheep_n and_o lamb_n and_o such_o be_v peter_n command_v to_o feed_v god_n say_v by_o his_o prophet_n isay_n c._n 11._o that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o hurt_v nor_o kill_v in_o all_o his_o holy_a mountain_n and_o that_o the_o wolf_n shall_v dwell_v with_o the_o lamb_n and_o the_o pard_n he_o with_o the_o kid_n but_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v full_a of_o blood_n and_o whole_o uphold_v by_o cruelty_n in_o france_n the_o pope_n and_o his_o complice_n have_v cause_v above_o two_o hundred_o thousand_o person_n to_o be_v murder_v for_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n the_o fire_n and_o butcher_n axe_n of_o their_o executioner_n have_v consume_v also_o infinite_a christian_n in_o italy_n spain_n england_n scotland_n germany_n and_o the_o low_a country_n very_o ignorant_a therefore_o he_o be_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n that_o suppose_v that_o the_o massacre_a romish_a church_n be_v found_v upon_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n the_o prophet_n daniel_n do_v prophecy_n how_o a_o certain_a king_n shall_v arise_v that_o shall_v speak_v word_n of_o blasphemy_n against_o the_o most_o high_a and_o consume_v his_o saint_n and_o that_o shall_v think_v that_o he_o may_v change_v time_n and_o law_n the_o apostle_n also_o 2._o thess_n 2._o show_v that_o there_o shall_v come_v a_o depart_a and_o that_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n shall_v be_v disclose_v and_o exalt_v himself_o against_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n s._n john_n also_o in_o his_o apocalypse_n show_v that_o antichrist_n shall_v rise_v after_o the_o decay_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n and_o give_v life_n to_o that_o state_n and_o that_o the_o great_a whore_n shall_v sit_v upon_o the_o seven_o hill_n and_o have_v her_o garment_n die_v red_a in_o the_o blood_n of_o saint_n but_o this_o argue_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n and_o that_o popish_a religion_n be_v not_o christian_a religion_n ground_v upon_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n but_o rather_o antichristian_a heresy_n found_v upon_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la and_o schoolmen_n fond_a and_o foolish_a invention_n final_o it_o be_v not_o only_o desperate_a ignorance_n but_o also_o mere_a madness_n to_o affirm_v that_o the_o ground_n doctrine_n heresy_n and_o blasphemy_n which_o before_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o be_v derive_v out_o of_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n will_v kellison_n the_o pope_n grand_a surueier_n undertake_v to_o prove_v unto_o we_o all_o the_o pope_n tradition_n concern_v the_o mass_n the_o dirge_n and_o office_n for_o the_o dead_a purgatory_n indulgence_n holy_a water_n holy_a candle_n paschal_n lamb_n rascal_n friar_n and_o monk_n and_o such_o like_a trash_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n he_o shall_v but_o lose_v his_o labour_n and_o percase_o his_o wit_n too_o for_o in_o their_o divine_a writing_n such_o fond_a superstitious_a and_o impious_a doctrine_n have_v no_o defence_n nor_o shelter_n but_o if_o he_o mean_v to_o find_v their_o true_a beginning_n then_o must_v he_o search_v the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la the_o writing_n of_o schoolman_n and_o canonist_n and_o other_o the_o pope_n adherent_n and_o there_o he_o shall_v not_o only_o find_v out_o the_o first_o author_n but_o also_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o novelty_n foolery_n and_o impiety_n of_o the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n chap._n xiii_o that_o popery_n be_v either_o condemn_v or_o not_o know_v by_o king_n and_o prince_n profess_v christian_n religion_n in_o old_a time_n the_o pope_n agent_n when_o they_o be_v upon_o their_o own_o dunghill_n and_o among_o their_o own_o disciple_n and_o favourer_n do_v make_v great_a crack_n as_o if_o the_o popish_a religion_n which_o be_v now_o teach_v at_o rome_n be_v the_o only_a religion_n profess_v by_o ancient_a king_n prince_n and_o emperor_n of_o rome_n that_o make_v profession_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n but_o who_o so_o listen_v to_o read_v the_o ancient_a confession_n of_o christian_a king_n and_o the_o law_n make_v by_o they_o both_o for_o maintenance_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o for_o the_o repress_v of_o diverse_a error_n shall_v find_v that_o the_o ground_n doctrine_n impiety_n &_o absurdity_n of_o popery_n be_v either_o disallow_v by_o they_o or_o unknowen_a unto_o they_o the_o first_o christian_a king_n of_o britain_n if_o we_o may_v believe_v bede_n and_o other_o of_o latter_a time_n for_o in_o more_o ancient_a history_n there_o be_v no_o record_n of_o such_o a_o king_n or_o such_o matter_n as_o then_o pass_v be_v lucius_n but_o we_o do_v not_o find_v that_o the_o popish_a mass_n be_v then_o hatch_v or_o that_o eleutherius_fw-la bishop_n of_o rome_n pretend_v the_o universal_a monarchy_n of_o the_o church_n nay_o we_o read_v that_o irenaeus_n do_v make_v as_o great_a account_n of_o other_o church_n as_o of_o rome_n albeit_o the_o same_o be_v first_o place_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o splendour_n and_o authority_n of_o that_o city_n furthermore_o lucius_n neither_o have_v image_n nor_o worship_v they_o nor_o do_v he_o give_v latria_n to_o the_o cross_n of_o purgat_fw-la one_o and_o indulgence_n he_o can_v not_o hear_v any_o thing_n for_o that_o eleutherius_fw-la as_o yet_o take_v not_o upon_o he_o to_o deliver_v soul_n out_o of_o purgatory_n nor_o to_o grant_v pardon_n a_o poena_fw-la &_o culpa_fw-la final_o if_o kellison_n seek_v to_o prove_v the_o article_n of_o popery_n before_o mention_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o lucius_n you_o shall_v soon_o see_v that_o the_o man_n will_v be_v at_o a_o stand_n the_o first_o christian_a emperor_n of_o rome_n be_v constantine_n the_o great_a but_o many_o act_n of_o his_o declare_v that_o he_o be_v neither_o a_o slave_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n nor_o a_o professor_n of_o popery_n for_o first_o by_o his_o authority_n both_o be_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a assemble_v and_o the_o act_n thereof_o establish_v as_o enschius_n in_o vita_fw-la constantini_n and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n do_v testify_v second_o that_o faith_n which_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a publish_v he_o profess_v but_o therein_o be_v not_o one_o article_n of_o popery_n establish_v but_o rather_o diverse_a refute_v as_o namely_o the_o doctrine_n of_o papist_n concern_v christ_n humanity_n and_o the_o popish_a real_a presence_n and_o dissolve_v priest_n marriage_n for_o if_o christ_n be_v true_a man_n then_o be_v not_o his_o body_n invisible_a and_o impalpable_a in_o the_o sacrament_n again_o if_o christ_n body_n be_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n than_o be_v not_o the_o same_o in_o every_o pix_n if_o the_o same_o be_v to_o come_v from_o heaven_n than_o be_v not_o the_o same_o to_o creep_v out_o of_o a_o pix_n if_o marriage_n of_o priest_n be_v honourable_a and_o not_o to_o be_v dissolve_v as_o be_v decree_v in_o the_o counceil_n of_o nice_a by_o the_o advice_n of_o paphnutius_fw-la then_o do_v the_o papist_n teach_v doctrine_n of_o devil_n that_o condemn_v such_o marriage_n and_o separate_v priest_n from_o their_o wife_n three_o all_o the_o act_n of_o that_o council_n be_v confirm_v and_o not_o only_o receive_v by_o constantine_n but_o that_o show_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n then_o have_v no_o more_o authority_n in_o his_o province_n than_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n in_o his_o as_o the_o six_o canon_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n testify_v the_o 4._o canon_n show_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v no_o great_a authority_n in_o ordain_v bishop_n than_o other_o metropolitan_n the_o five_o canon_n equal_v his_o power_n in_o excommunication_n to_o that_o which_o other_o bishop_n have_v to_o abridge_v this_o matter_n we_o find_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v as_o well_o subject_a to_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a as_o other_o bishop_n final_o we_o find_v that_o constantine_n make_v law_n for_o church_n government_n in_o his_o time_n and_o not_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n nay_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o be_v say_v in_o the_o counterfeit_a donation_n of_o constantine_n have_v their_o privilege_n from_o constantine_n and_o not_o contrariwise_o privilegium_fw-la romanae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la pontifici_fw-la
drive_v gregory_n the_o 7._o out_o of_o his_o seat_n and_o appoint_v another_o in_o his_o place_n henry_n the_o 5._o his_o son_n take_v paschalis_n prisoner_n and_o make_v he_o swear_v to_o certain_a article_n he_o break_v they_o afterward_o i_o confess_v but_o that_o be_v rather_o a_o argument_n of_o the_o pope_n perfidiousness_n than_o a_o proof_n against_o the_o emperor_n authority_n neither_o do_v the_o emperor_n succeed_v for_o many_o year_n cease_v to_o defend_v their_o right_n against_o the_o pope_n encrochment_n and_o usurpation_n until_o such_o time_n as_o the_o pope_n by_o force_n of_o arm_n and_o rebellion_n of_o subject_n have_v prevail_v against_o they_o and_o when_o they_o can_v not_o by_o force_n resist_v yet_o do_v they_o often_o publish_v their_o complaint_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o message_n of_o maximilian_n the_o first_o to_o the_o pope_n by_o certain_a memorial_n of_o charles_n the_o five_o concern_v wrong_v offer_v by_o the_o pope_n by_o the_o greenance_n collect_v by_o the_o prince_n of_o germany_n present_v to_o adrian_n the_o 6._o by_o the_o apology_n of_o the_o bohemian_o english_a french_a and_o other_o nation_n philip_n the_o french_a king_n write_v to_o boniface_n the_o 8._o use_v these_o word_n sciat_fw-la tua_fw-la maxima_fw-la fatuitas_fw-la nos_fw-la in_o temporalibus_fw-la nulli_fw-la subesse_fw-la i_o do_v thy_o great_a foolery_n say_v he_o write_v to_o he_o to_o wit_n that_o for_o temporal_a matter_n we_o be_v subject_a to_o none_o the_o same_o king_n do_v also_o handle_v the_o pope_n nuntioe_n according_a to_o their_o deserve_n henry_n the_o 2._o as_o matthew_n paris_n testify_v forbid_v the_o payment_n of_o peter_n penny_n and_o such_o as_o appeal_v to_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n he_o commit_v to_o prison_n appellantes_fw-la ad_fw-la curiam_fw-la rom._n mandavit_fw-la custodiae_fw-la afterward_o write_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o colein_n he_o threatu_v to_o impugn_v the_o pope_n and_o to_o thrust_v out_o of_o his_o kingdom_n all_o his_o favourer_n papam_fw-la &_o omnes_fw-la suos_fw-la say_v he_o manifestè_fw-la impugnabimus_fw-la &_o quicunque_fw-la in_o terra_fw-la mea_fw-la inventus_fw-la fuerit_fw-la qui_fw-la papae_fw-la posthac_fw-la adhaerere_fw-la voluerit_fw-la expelletur_fw-la è_fw-la regno_fw-la happy_a have_v he_o be_v if_o he_o have_v always_o persist_v in_o this_o purpose_n the_o king_n of_o england_n afterward_o by_o their_o law_n against_o provision_n restrain_v the_o pope_n authority_n and_o in_o the_o end_n that_o famous_a and_o worthy_a prince_n king_n henry_n the_o eight_o do_v utter_o exclude_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o agent_n from_o all_o jurisdiction_n within_o his_o kingdom_n furthermore_o albeit_o some_o prince_n be_v so_o senseless_a that_o they_o feel_v not_o the_o wrong_v offer_v they_o by_o the_o pope_n yet_o do_v such_o as_o love_v the_o honour_n of_o their_o country_n never_o cease_v to_o complain_v thereof_o alan_n chartier_n show_v that_o priest_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o people_n be_v become_v most_o vile_a and_o that_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n be_v alienate_v from_o the_o pope_n obedience_n corda_fw-la hominum_fw-la ab_fw-la obedientia_fw-la scilicet_fw-la papae_fw-la alienata_fw-la julian_n the_o cardinal_a writing_n to_o eugenius_n the_o four_o show_v it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v lest_o the_o laity_n shall_v fall_v upon_o the_o clergy_n ne_fw-la irruerent_fw-la in_o ecclesiasticos_fw-la laici_fw-la the_o german_n in_o the_o end_n of_o their_o grievance_n say_v that_o they_o neither_o will_v suffer_v nor_o can_v endure_v the_o wrong_n offer_v they_o by_o the_o pope_n dixerunt_fw-la germani_n principes_fw-la say_v he_o that_o report_v their_o grievance_n se_fw-la onera_fw-la papae_fw-la nec_fw-la perferre_fw-la velle_fw-la nec_fw-la tolerare_fw-la posse_fw-la nicholas_n de_fw-fr clemangis_n show_v that_o both_o prince_n and_o other_o murmur_v against_o the_o pope_n exaction_n charles_n the_o french_a king_n inveigh_v against_o benet_n the_o 13._o signify_v that_o god_n will_v displace_v the_o pope_n out_o of_o their_o seat_n for_o oppress_v and_o spoil_v christ_n sheep_n facti_fw-la sunt_fw-la greges_fw-la mei_fw-la in_o rapinam_fw-la etc._n etc._n propterea_fw-la cessare_fw-la eos_fw-la faciam_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la pascant_fw-la ulterius_fw-la gregem_fw-la meum_fw-la these_o word_n charles_n apply_v against_o the_o pope_n the_o english_a be_v excommunicate_v in_o king_n johns_n time_n call_v the_o pope_n agent_n marcidos_fw-la ribaldo_n that_o be_v rot_v rascal_n and_o signify_v that_o they_o will_v not_o endure_v their_o tyranny_n petrus_n de_fw-fr ferrarijs_fw-la in_o form_n resp_n rei_fw-la conventi_fw-la bewail_v the_o misery_n of_o christian_a prince_n that_o endure_v so_o many_o wrong_n at_o the_o pope_n hand_n and_o make_v themselves_o his_o slave_n and_o yet_o provide_v no_o remedy_n for_o it_o heu_fw-la miseri_fw-la imperatores_fw-la &_o principes_fw-la seculares_fw-la say_v he_o qui_fw-la haec_fw-la &_o alia_fw-la sustinetis_fw-la &_o vos_fw-la seruos_fw-la pontificum_fw-la facitis_fw-la &_o mundum_fw-la per_fw-la eos_fw-la infinity_n modis_fw-la usurpari_fw-la videtis_fw-la nec_fw-la de_fw-la remedio_fw-la cogitatis_fw-la christian_n prince_n and_o king_n therefore_o have_v always_o abhor_v the_o pope_n tyranny_n &_o refuse_v his_o religion_n and_o the_o more_o christian_n they_o have_v show_v themselves_o the_o more_o resistance_n they_o have_v make_v both_o against_o his_o corruption_n in_o doctrine_n and_o his_o usurpation_n and_o abuse_n in_o government_n vlrichus_n vttenus_n in_o his_o preface_n to_o laurentius_n vallaes_n treatise_n against_o the_o counterfeit_a donation_n of_o constantine_n do_v thus_o exclaim_v against_o the_o pope_n as_o enemy_n and_o spoiler_n of_o all_o christian_n anon_o fuerunt_fw-la christianorum_fw-la host_n illi_fw-la pontifices_fw-la qui_fw-la omnium_fw-la ad_fw-la se_fw-la opes_fw-la attraxerunt_fw-la onmibus_fw-la liberis_fw-la seruitutem_fw-la moliti_fw-la sunt_fw-la qui_fw-fr imper_v to_o reges_fw-la pe●_n unia_fw-la cite_v de●l_fw-la aliabant_fw-la be_v not_o the_o pope_n enemy_n of_o christian_n which_o draw_v unto_o themselves_o the_o wealth_n of_o all_o and_o endeavour_v to_o oppress_v all_o free_a man_n which_o spoil_a king_n of_o their_o government_n and_o the_o subject_n of_o their_o money_n chap._n xiiii_o that_o the_o ancient_a britan_n and_o english_a be_v not_o first_o convert_v to_o popish_a religion_n let_v that_o abide_v in_o you_o say_v s._n john_n 1._o epist_n 2._o which_o you_o have_v hear_v from_o the_o beginning_n so_o likewise_o we_o say_v let_v we_o abide_v in_o that_o faith_n and_o let_v that_o faith_n abide_v in_o we_o that_o be_v first_o preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n scholar_n and_o successor_n in_o this_o island_n and_o let_v we_o not_o be_v carry_v away_o by_o the_o poleshorne_a crew_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o believe_v popish_a novelty_n and_o fable_n that_o the_o ancient_a christian_n of_o this_o land_n whether_o britan_n english_a or_o scots_a be_v not_o convert_v to_o popish_a religion_n that_o be_v now_o predominant_a in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n we_o have_v three_o most_o evident_a demonstration_n to_o assure_v us._n first_a those_o doctrine_n and_o ground_n of_o popery_n which_o before_o i_o have_v mention_v will_v never_o be_v prove_v to_o have_v be_v teach_v by_o the_o first_o planter_n of_o christian_a religion_n in_o this_o land_n and_o very_o absurd_a it_o be_v to_o suppose_v they_o to_o have_v be_v the_o author_n of_o those_o heresy_n impiety_n and_o blasphemy_n which_o be_v so_o rife_o in_o popery_n if_o s._n peter_n or_o s._n paul_n or_o any_o of_o their_o scholar_n do_v plant_v religion_n here_o we_o must_v not_o think_v that_o they_o teach_v one_o thing_n and_o write_v another_o or_o that_o the_o scholar_n preach_v otherwise_o then_o they_o have_v learn_v from_o their_o master_n if_o joseph_n of_o arimathaea_n do_v first_o convert_v the_o britan_n and_o fugatius_n and_o damianus_n confirm_v they_o in_o the_o faith_n or_o if_o austen_n the_o monk_n and_o his_o fellow_n do_v first_o convert_v the_o saxon_n or_o english_a yet_o can_v it_o not_o be_v show_v that_o any_o one_o of_o these_o do_v teach_v that_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o holy_a scripture_n be_v with_o equal_a affection_n to_o be_v receive_v or_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o popish_a holy_a water_n paschal_n lamb_n tosary_n image_n and_o such_o like_a tradition_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o that_o christ_n true_a body_n be_v tear_v with_o tooth_n and_o receive_v down_o into_o the_o belly_n and_o may_v be_v eat_v of_o dog_n and_o hog_n or_o that_o christian_n be_v justify_v by_o extreme_a unction_n or_o eat_v saltfish_n and_o redherring_n upon_o friday_n and_o fast_a day_n or_o that_o incense_n be_v to_o be_v burn_v to_o image_n or_o the_o sacrament_n adore_v for_o god_n and_o carry_v about_o in_o procession_n or_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o point_n of_o popery_n before_o mention_v either_o therefore_o let_v parson_n show_v we_o that_o the_o several_a point_n of_o popery_n before_o touch_v be_v teach_v by_o s._n peter_n the_o apostle_n and_o eleutherus_n and_o gregory_n
bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o else_o he_o must_v know_v that_o whatsoever_o he_o fable_v of_o his_o three_o suppose_a conversion_n the_o same_o will_v make_v for_o the_o destruction_n of_o popery_n and_o the_o overthrow_n of_o the_o cause_n which_o he_o maintain_v second_o we_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v that_o all_o these_o corruption_n of_o doctrine_n superstitious_a devise_n impiety_n &_o blasphemy_n which_o we_o refuse_v have_v be_v receive_v and_o establish_v in_o the_o synagogue_n of_o rome_n not_o only_o since_o the_o apostle_n time_n but_o also_o since_o the_o time_n of_o eleutherius_fw-la and_o gregory_n the_o first_o the_o idolatrous_a worship_n of_o image_n be_v first_o confirm_v by_o the_o second_o counncell_n of_o nice_a under_o the_o empire_n of_o irene_n and_o by_o little_a and_o little_o bring_v into_o the_o western_a church_n be_v long_o oppugn_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n germany_n and_o britain_n that_o the_o image_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o trinity_n shall_v be_v worship_v with_o latria_fw-la be_v not_o allow_v in_o that_o idolatrous_a council_n but_o first_o teach_v by_o thomas_n aquinas_n and_o his_o follower_n and_o ground_v not_o upon_o god_n word_n but_o upon_o this_o rule_n of_o philosophy_n that_o the_o same_o motion_n be_v direct_v to_o the_o image_n and_o the_o thing_n imagine_v which_o rule_n by_o he_o be_v mistake_v be_v mean_v of_o the_o species_n or_o representation_n of_o thing_n in_o our_o understanding_n and_o not_o of_o material_a image_n that_o come_v not_o within_o our_o understanding_n the_o pope_n authority_n begin_v to_o be_v establish_v first_o by_o the_o rebellion_n of_o gregory_n the_o second_o and_z gregory_z the_o three_o that_o cause_v italy_n to_o revolt_v from_o the_o emperor_n under_o pretence_n of_o worship_n of_o image_n and_o afterward_o the_o same_o be_v confirm_v by_o gregory_n the_o seven_o and_o his_o successor_n that_o by_o force_n and_o violence_n overthrow_v the_o empire_n and_o make_v way_n by_o the_o divisious_a of_o christendom_n to_o the_o victory_n and_o conquest_n of_o the_o turk_n and_o saracen_n boniface_n the_o three_o obtain_v of_o phocas_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v repute_v head_n of_o other_o church_n boniface_n the_o 9_o as_o theodoric_n à_fw-fr niem_fw-la in_o his_o book_n of_o schism_n testify_v by_o fraud_n usurp_v first_o the_o temporal_a government_n over_o the_o city_n and_o territory_n of_o rome_n which_o before_o that_o belong_v either_o to_o the_o emperor_n or_o to_o the_o citizen_n and_o thus_o by_o fraud_n and_o violence_n the_o pope_n make_v himself_o great_a and_o by_o little_a and_o little_o exalt_v himself_o in_o the_o church_n and_o erect_v the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n the_o carnal_a eat_n and_o presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v first_o decree_v by_o nicolas_n the_o second_o in_o the_o chap._n ego_fw-la berengarius_fw-la do_v 2._o the_o consecrat_fw-mi for_o there_o we_o read_v first_o that_o christ_n true_a body_n be_v handle_v with_o the_o hand_n of_o priest_n break_a and_o tear_v with_o the_o tooth_n of_o the_o faithful_a his_o word_n prescribe_v to_o berengarius_fw-la be_v verum_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguinem_fw-la domini_fw-la nostri_fw-la jesu_fw-la christi_fw-la esse_fw-la &_o sensualiter_fw-la non_fw-la solum_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o veritate_fw-la manibus_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la tractari_fw-la frangi_fw-la &_o fidelium_fw-la dentibus_fw-la atteri_fw-la transubstantiation_n get_v reputation_n first_o by_o the_o decree_n of_o innocent_a the_o 3._o as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o chapter_n firmiter_fw-la de_fw-fr sum_n trin._n &_o fid_fw-we cath_z for_o there_o he_o decree_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v transubstantiate_a into_o the_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n into_o blood_n by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n but_o yet_o two_o inconvenience_n will_v here_o fall_v out_o if_o we_o yield_v to_o his_o word_n for_o there_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v both_o the_o priest_n and_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o that_o this_o transubstantiation_n be_v wrought_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n whereof_o the_o first_o overthrow_v the_o priesthood_n of_o the_o polshorne_a priest_n of_o baal_n the_o second_o do_v take_v away_o the_o efficacy_n from_o these_o word_n hoc_fw-la est_fw-la enim_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la and_o hic_fw-la est_fw-la sanguis_fw-la meus_fw-la and_o ascribe_v all_o to_o the_o power_n of_o god_n absolute_o in_o the_o conventicle_n of_o constance_n we_o find_v it_o first_o resolve_v that_o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n do_v remain_v without_o subject_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v christ_n immediate_a vicar_n and_o sess_v 13._o that_n although_o christ_n do_v institute_v the_o eucharist_n in_o bread_n and_o wine_n yet_o lay-man_n be_v only_o to_o receine_v it_o under_o one_o kind_n auricular_a confession_n be_v establish_v by_o innocent_a the_o 3._o in_o the_o chap._n omnis_fw-la utriusque_fw-la sexus_fw-la de_fw-fr poenit_fw-la &_o remiss_a for_o before_o that_o it_o be_v free_a to_o confess_v or_o not_o to_o confess_v the_o doctrine_n of_o confession_n be_v enlarge_v by_o the_o canoniste_n and_o schoolman_n in_o the_o conventicle_n of_o florence_n we_o read_v that_o the_o form_n of_o order_v masseprieste_n of_o popish_a confirmation_n and_o extreme_a unction_n and_o of_o other_o popish_a sacrament_n be_v then_o first_o settle_v by_o law_n there_o also_o purgatory_n and_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n be_v first_o enact_v by_o force_n of_o law_n clement_n the_o 6._o in_o the_o chapter_n unigenitus_fw-la extr_n de_fw-fr poenit_fw-la &_o remis_fw-la do_v first_o devise_v the_o treasure_n of_o indulgence_n boniface_n the_o 8._o and_o sixtus_n the_o 4._o order_a the_o popish_a jubiley_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o the_o council_n it_o be_v first_o decree_v in_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n under_o leo_n the_o 10._o who_o also_o begin_v first_o to_o thunder_n out_o his_o excommunication_n against_o m._n luther_n final_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n give_v final_a complement_n to_o the_o popish_a doctrine_n of_o tradition_n of_o the_o latin_a vulgar_a translation_n of_o concupiscence_n of_o formal_a justification_n by_o charity_n and_o work_n of_o seven_o sacrament_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n of_o purgatory_n and_o indulgence_n of_o frame_v the_o image_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o heresy_n and_o abuse_n for_o what_o before_o the_o schoolman_n have_v teach_v vain_o that_o begin_v now_o by_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o complice_n to_o be_v establish_v and_o hold_v for_o law_n then_o also_o the_o missal_n breviaries_n office_n and_o other_o ritual_a book_n begin_v to_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n authority_n three_o it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o of_o the_o time_n wherein_o joseph_n of_o arimathaea_n eleutherius_fw-la and_o gregory_n the_o first_o live_v be_v direct_v contrary_a in_o diverse_a point_n to_o popish_a religion_n s._n peter_n 1._o ep_v 2._o exhort_v all_o christian_n to_o submit_v themselves_o to_o king_n and_o governor_n but_o the_o pope_n command_v subject_n to_o rebel_n and_o take_v arm_n against_o prince_n and_o excommunicate_v such_o as_o refuse_v so_o to_o do_v as_o appear_v by_o the_o excommunication_n of_o paul_n the_o 3._o against_o king_n henry_n the_o 8._o and_o of_o pius_n the_o five_o against_o queen_n elizabeth_n both_o which_o be_v extant_a in_o sanders_n his_o libel_n de_fw-fr schismate_fw-la s._n peter_n 1._o ep_v 1._o will_v have_v christian_n to_o trust_v perfect_o on_o god_n grace_n the_o papist_n teach_v their_o disciple_n to_o distrust_v god_n grace_n and_o to_o doubt_v of_o their_o salvation_n and_o to_o trust_v rather_o in_o their_o own_o work_n and_o merit_n he_o say_v we_o be_v not_o redeem_v with_o corruptible_a thing_n but_o with_o christ_n most_o precious_a blood_n these_o teach_v that_o man_n be_v redeem_v after_o a_o sort_n by_o indulgence_n and_o by_o the_o satisfaction_n and_o merit_n of_o saint_n to_o who_o bellarmine_n in_o his_o book_n of_o indulgence_n doubt_v not_o to_o give_v the_o title_n of_o redeemer_n s._n peter_n exhort_v christian_n to_o desire_v the_o sincere_a milk_n of_o god_n word_n that_o they_o may_v grow_v thereby_o the_o papist_n bar_v man_n from_o hear_v god_n word_n in_o tongue_n which_o they_o understand_v and_o send_v they_o to_o believe_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o impure_a trash_n of_o the_o schoolman_n and_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la he_o exclude_v the_o lordship_n of_o pope_n over_o god_n inheritance_n these_o false_a teacher_n enforce_v it_o he_o exhort_v we_o to_o make_v our_o election_n sure_a these_o fellow_n teach_v that_o christian_n can_v be_v assure_v of_o their_o election_n or_o make_v it_o sure_o joseph_n of_o arimathaea_n and_o the_o godly_a bishop_n that_o live_v in_o his_o time_n and_o diverse_a hundred_o year_n after_o he_o continued_z we_o doubt_v not_o in_o
reproachful_a humour_n but_o never_o do_v catholic_n so_o teach_v the_o apostle_n 2._o tim._n 3._o say_v they_o be_v able_a to_o make_v we_o wise_a to_o salvation_n and_o that_o they_o be_v give_v of_o god_n to_o make_v the_o man_n of_o god_n perfect_a s._n augustine_n lib._n 2._o the_o doct_n christ_n c._n 9_o say_v that_o all_o thing_n necessary_o belong_v to_o faith_n or_o manner_n be_v contain_v in_o plain_a place_n of_o scripture_n the_o ancient_a father_n do_v every_o where_o speak_v honourable_o of_o scripture_n and_o ireney_n say_v it_o be_v the_o property_n of_o heretic_n when_o they_o be_v convince_v by_o scripture_n to_o accuse_v they_o second_o these_o be_v special_a point_n of_o popery_n viz._n that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o foundation_n head_n and_o spouse_n of_o the_o church_n that_o his_o decretales_fw-la concern_v matter_n of_o faith_n be_v infallible_a that_o unwritten_a tradition_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n not_o write_v and_o equal_a to_o scripture_n that_o the_o old_a latin_a vulgar_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n be_v authentical_a for_o the_o most_o of_o this_o be_v deliver_v and_o determine_v in_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n sess_v 4._o the_o rest_n be_v hold_v by_o the_o canonist_n and_o the_o pope_n proctor_n these_o doctrine_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n 1._o cor._n 3._o who_o show_v we_o that_o no_o other_o foundation_n can_v be_v lay_v but_o christ_n jesus_n and_o ephes_n 2_o where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o faithful_a be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n irenaeus_n lib._n 3._o advers_a haeres_fw-la c._n 1._o show_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n chrysostome_n hom_n 6._o in_o matth._n say_v the_o church_n be_v jerusalem_n who_o foundation_n be_v lay_v upon_o the_o mountain_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o be_v subject_a to_o error_n in_o determine_v matter_n of_o faith_n be_v contrary_a both_o to_o scripture_n and_o father_n as_o i_o have_v already_o show_v in_o my_o book_n de_fw-fr pontifice_fw-la rom._n the_o diversity_n and_o contrariety_n of_o diverse_a edition_n of_o the_o old_a latin_a vulgar_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n we_o have_v prove_v heretofore_o that_o it_o differ_v from_o the_o original_n it_o be_v apparent_a and_o arias_n montanus_n erasmus_n caietan_n and_o diverse_a other_o acknowledge_v it_o the_o father_n in_o matter_n of_o doubt_n send_v we_o to_o the_o original_n the_o falsehood_n of_o romish_a tradition_n &_o the_o repugnance_n betwixt_o they_o and_o scripture_n i_o have_v prove_v in_o my_o book_n the_o scripture_n against_o bellarmine_n three_o the_o papist_n allow_v no_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n against_o that_o sense_n 4._o cont._n trident._n sess_v 4._o which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n hold_v contra_fw-la eum_fw-la sensum_fw-la quam_fw-la tenuit_fw-la &_o tenet_fw-la sancta_fw-la mater_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la and_o by_o the_o church_n they_o understand_v the_o pope_n principal_o but_o that_o be_v never_o the_o opinion_n of_o catholic_n nay_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o follower_n allow_v diverse_a interpretation_n contrary_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o ancient_a father_n and_o catholic_n they_o believe_v that_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n feed_v my_o sheep_n do_v proper_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o thereby_o he_o have_v power_n to_o depose_v prince_n these_o word_n hiercm_n 1._o i_o have_v appomt_v thou_o over_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n they_o transfer_v to_o the_o pope_n boniface_n the_o 8._o in_o the_o chap._n unam_fw-la sanctam_fw-la extr_n demaior_n &_o obed_a do_v thereof_o conclude_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n to_o judge_v all_o earthly_a prince_n innocent_n the_o 3._o in_o the_o chap._n solitae_fw-la de_fw-fr maior_fw-la &_o ob_v because_o it_o be_v say_v genes_n 1._o that_o god_n make_v a_o great_a and_o lesser_a light_n in_o the_o firmament_n collect_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o the_o emperor_n christ_n say_v do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o they_o interpret_v it_o as_o if_o christ_n have_v say_v offer_v up_o my_o body_n and_o blood_n to_o my_o father_n and_o do_v it_o in_o remembrance_n of_o angel_n and_o saint_n christ_n say_v search_v the_o scripture_n and_o drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o which_o they_o expound_v as_o if_o he_o have_v forbid_a laieman_n either_o to_o search_v scripture_n or_o to_o receive_v the_o cup._n they_o have_v also_o infinite_a other_o such_o like_a perverse_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n contrary_a to_o the_o exposition_n of_o catholic_a father_n and_o yet_o stifle_v maintain_v they_o 4._o catholic_n never_o allow_v the_o legend_n of_o s._n george_n s._n christopher_n s._n catherine_n s._n ursula_n s._n cyprian_n the_o magician_n and_o such_o legend_n as_o the_o papist_n read_v in_o their_o church_n public_o and_o believe_v they_o as_o tradition_n of_o their_o elder_n and_o ground_n of_o faith_n the_o legend_n of_o s._n george_n of_o cyricus_n &_o julitta_n of_o abgarus_n and_o of_o the_o invention_n of_o the_o cross_n be_v condemn_v by_o gelasius_n c._n sancta_fw-la romana_fw-la do_v 15._o 5._o tho._n aquin._n opusc_fw-la count_n errores_fw-la graec._n say_v it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o believe_v the_o determination_n of_o tho_o pope_n in_o matter_n belong_v to_o say_v or_o manner_n a_o matter_n never_o believe_v by_o catholic_n 6._o bellarmine_n and_o other_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n law_n do_v bind_v we_o in_o conscience_n but_o this_o never_o enter_v into_o the_o thought_n of_o catholic_n s._n james._n c._n 4._o say_v we_o have_v only_o one_o lawgiver_n and_o judge_n that_o can_v save_v and_o destroy_v 7._o they_o believe_v that_o image_n be_v to_o he_o make_v and_o worship_v and_o consequent_o fill_v every_o corner_n of_o their_o church_n with_o image_n they_o also_o think_v it_o lawful_a to_o picture_n god_n the_o father_n like_o a_o old_a man_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o figure_n of_o a_o dove_n but_o the_o law_n of_o god_n express_o forbid_v the_o worship_n of_o grave_a image_n and_o all_o such_o similitude_n and_o lactantius_n lib._n 2._o instil_v c._n 19_o say_v there_o be_v no_o religion_n where_o such_o image_n be_v s._n augustine_n the_o fid_fw-we &_o symbolo_fw-la say_v that_o it_o be_v impious_a to_o place_v the_o image_n of_o god_n in_o the_o church_n tale_n simulachrum_fw-la deo_fw-la nefas_fw-la est_fw-la christiano_n in_fw-la templo_fw-la collocare_fw-la 8._o the_o jebusite_n of_o collem_fw-la in_o their_o censure_n teach_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o law_n and_o that_o our_o life_n and_o salvation_n do_v consist_v therein_o but_o the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o that_o the_o law_n be_v the_o minister_n of_o death_n and_o irenaeus_n testify_v lib._n 3_o advers_a haeres_fw-la c._n 20._o that_o the_o law_n be_v spiritual_a do_v only_o manifest_a sin_n and_o not_o kill_v it_o and_o so_o do_v catholic_n believe_v 9_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n sess_v 5._o teach_v that_o concupiscence_n be_v not_o sin_n in_o the_o regenerate_a but_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 7._o show_v the_o concupiscence_n be_v sin_n and_o all_o true_a catholic_n must_v needs_o confess_v it_o see_v it_o be_v forbid_v by_o the_o law_n 10_o bellarmine_n and_o his_o consort_n believe_v that_o all_o christian_n be_v able_a to_o perform_v the_o law_n perfect_o but_o catholic_n believe_v that_o this_o savour_v of_o pelagianisme_n for_o if_o they_o be_v able_a to_o perform_v the_o law_n of_o god_n perfect_o then_o may_v they_o live_v without_o all_o sin_n which_o augustine_n and_o hierome_n in_o their_o dispute_n against_o the_o pelagian_n declare_v to_o be_v heresy_n 11_o papist_n believe_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v able_a to_o dispense_v with_o oath_n and_o to_o absolve_v subject_n from_o their_o obedience_n and_o fealty_n to_o their_o prince_n but_o catholic_n assure_v themselves_o that_o it_o be_v impious_a to_o take_v god_n name_n in_o vain_a and_o to_o violate_v lawful_a oath_n upon_o the_o pope_n or_o any_o other_o man_n warrant_n 12_o papist_n teach_v that_o the_o virgin_n mary_n be_v exempt_a from_o original_a sin_n as_o we_o may_v perceive_v by_o bellarmine_n lib._n 4._o the_o amiss_o great_a c._n 15._o and_o by_o the_o decrerale_fw-mi of_o sixtus_n 4._o and_o this_o be_v the_o most_o common_a opinion_n but_o catholic_n think_v contrary_a for_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 5._o say_v that_o through_o the_o offence_n of_o one_o all_o man_n be_v subject_a to_o condemnation_n 13._o they_o believe_v that_o the_o bless_a virgin_n house_n be_v carry_v out_o of_o galiley_n into_o dalmatia_n and_o from_o thence_o into_o italy_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o angel_n and_o that_o the_o same_o be_v now_o at_o loreto_n but_o catholic_n laugh_v at_o such_o fable_n and_o esteem_v the_o worship_n
of_o her_o image_n there_o to_o be_v idolatrous_a 14._o they_o celebrate_v the_o feast_n of_o our_o lady_n conception_n and_o of_o the_o assumption_n of_o her_o body_n into_o heaven_n as_o appear_v by_o their_o missal_n and_o breviaries_n but_o catholic_n drslike_v both_o as_o ground_v upon_o apocryphal_a fable_n and_o lie_v legend_n s._n bernard_n epist_n 174._o speak_v against_o the_o feast_n of_o her_o conception_n say_v she_o need_v no_o false_a honour_n 15._o catholic_n never_o believe_v that_o christ_n have_v a_o body_n invisible_a impalpable_a and_o not_o comprehend_v in_o a_o place_n s._n augustine_n de_fw-fr essentia_fw-la divinitatis_fw-la say_v that_o christ_n according_a to_o his_o humane_a nature_n be_v visible_a corporal_a and_o local_a but_o our_o adversary_n teach_v that_o his_o true_a body_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n where_o it_o be_v neither_o see_v feel_v nor_o circumscribe_v in_o a_o place_n 16._o they_o speak_v reverentlie_o of_o christ_n body_n and_o hold_v it_o blasphemy_n to_o say_v that_o the_o same_o may_v be_v cast_v into_o the_o fire_n or_o eat_v of_o dog_n or_o hog_n or_o other_o brute_n beast_n but_o the_o papist_n do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o go_v about_o to_o clear_v themselves_o of_o this_o blasphemy_n 17_o they_o teach_v that_o christ_n have_v a_o body_n like_a to_o we_o in_o all_o thing_n sin_n except_o the_o papist_n believe_v that_o his_o body_n be_v real_o in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o contain_v in_o the_o compass_n of_o a_o consecrate_a host_n and_o that_o the_o same_o be_v invisible_a and_o able_a to_o penetrate_v other_o solid_a body_n without_o the_o dissolution_n of_o their_o substance_n but_o such_o abodie_o no_o man_n ever_o yet_o have_v nor_o by_o nature_n can_v have_v 18_o they_o believe_v that_o every_o body_n be_v continue_v to_o itself_o or_o as_o logician_n call_v it_o continua_fw-la quanutas_fw-la but_o papist_n believe_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o every_o altar_n and_o yet_o not_o in_o the_o middle_a place_n whereby_o it_o follow_v that_o christ_n head_n in_o heaven_n be_v not_o continue_v to_o his_o foot_n be_v in_o a_o consecrate_a host_n in_o earth_n 19_o vigilius_n lib._n 4._o cont_n eutych_n say_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v now_o in_o heaven_n be_v not_o on_o earth_n and_o that_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o catholic_n but_o the_o false_a and_o pretend_a catholic_n believe_v that_o his_o body_n be_v both_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o diverse_a distant_a place_n at_o one_o time_n 20._o catholic_n believe_v that_o christ_n only_o be_v our_o redeemer_n for_o so_o the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o rom._n 3.1_o cor._n 1._o and_o diverse_a other_o place_n but_o bellarmine_n in_o his_o first_o book_n of_o indulgence_n teach_v we_o that_o saint_n and_o other_o may_v be_v call_v redeemer_n all_o his_o consort_n also_o teach_v that_o the_o pope_n by_o his_o indulgence_n redeem_v soul_n out_o of_o purgatory_n 21._o catholic_n acknowledge_v that_o christ_n be_v our_o justice_n for_o so_o the_o apostle_n 1._o cor._n 1._o express_o say_v they_o believe_v also_o that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n in_o he_o as_o we_o read_v rom._n 5._o but_o kellison_n in_o his_o survey_n and_o his_o consort_n teach_v that_o he_o be_v only_o the_o meritorious_a cause_n of_o our_o justification_n and_o that_o we_o be_v formal_o justify_v and_o save_v by_o our_o own_o work_n 22._o catholic_n doubt_v not_o to_o make_v their_o election_n sure_a and_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n have_v peace_n with_o god_n and_o be_v persuade_v that_o nothing_o shall_v separate_v they_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n for_o all_o this_o be_v apostolic_a doctrine_n but_o papist_n teach_v their_o follower_n to_o doubt_v of_o their_o election_n and_o of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n towards_o they_o and_o deprive_v they_o both_o of_o peace_n of_o conscience_n and_o of_o all_o assurance_n of_o god_n grace_n 23._o catholic_n believe_v that_o christ_n be_v wound_v for_o our_o transgression_n and_o that_o he_o have_v bear_v our_o infirmity_n and_o that_o by_o his_o stripe_n we_o be_v heal_v for_o so_o the_o prophet_n isay_n cap._n 53._o teach_v us._n but_o the_o pretend_a popish_a catholic_n do_v lash_v themselves_o and_o hope_v by_o their_o own_o stripe_n to_o heal_v their_o sin_n and_o to_o satisfy_v for_o they_o and_o without_o this_o satisfaction_n they_o believe_v that_o no_o man_n can_v obtain_v remission_n of_o sin_n 24._o catholic_n ever_o spare_v their_o own_o body_n but_o certain_a heretic_n and_o idolater_n do_v usual_o afflict_v their_o body_n and_o lash_n themselves_o before_o their_o idol_n in_o lash_v of_o themselves_o therefore_o the_o papist_n imitate_v the_o priest_n of_o baal_n and_o not_o true_a catholic_n 25._o catholic_n believe_v that_o their_o sin_n be_v purge_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n as_o we_o read_v hebr._n 1._o but_o papist_n believe_v that_o their_o sin_n be_v purge_v in_o purgatory_n and_o by_o their_o own_o satsifaction_n 26._o the_o greek_n to_o this_o day_n never_o believe_v purgatory_n neither_o do_v any_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n believe_v that_o after_o our_o sin_n be_v remit_v christian_n be_v to_o satisfy_v for_o temporal_a pain_n either_o in_o this_o life_n or_o in_o purgatory_n the_o doctrine_n therefore_o of_o purgatory_n will_v never_o be_v prove_v catholic_a 27._o the_o apostle_n and_o ancient_a father_n never_o know_v nor_o hear_v of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o treasure_n of_o the_o pope_n indulgence_n this_o doctrine_n of_o papist_n therefore_o be_v to_o be_v abolish_v as_o not_o catholic_a 28._o true_a catholic_n never_o believe_v that_o christian_n be_v justify_v by_o marriage_n the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n say_v it_o be_v only_o a_o remedy_n against_o sin_n but_o papist_n hold_v they_o be_v justify_v by_o marriage_n aswell_o as_o by_o other_o sacrament_n 29._o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o conventicle_n of_o florence_n concern_v the_o form_n of_o priesthood_n popish_a confirmation_n extreme_a unction_n and_o their_o number_n of_o seven_o sacrament_n can_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v catholic_a 3._o bellarmine_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-la effectu_fw-la sacrament_n c._n 3._o and_o other_o his_o consort_n affirm_v that_o christian_n be_v instify_v by_o the_o sacrament_n ex_fw-la opere_fw-la operato_fw-la or_o by_o their_o own_o act_n and_o work_v wrought_v whereby_o it_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v justify_v by_o grease_v cross_v and_o such_o like_a act_n but_o this_o doctrine_n be_v not_o catholic_a the_o greek_n to_o this_o day_n acknowledge_v no_o such_o doctrine_n nor_o be_v any_o such_o thing_n to_o be_v find_v in_o ancient_a writer_n 31._o the_o greek_n to_o this_o day_n renounce_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n the_o ancient_a father_n never_o hear_v of_o a_o triple_a crown_a pope_n with_o a_o cross_a slipper_n and_o a_o guard_n of_o suitzer_n the_o doctrine_n therefore_o of_o the_o pope_n general_a vicarship_n teach_v by_o bellarmine_n in_o his_o book_n the_o pontisice_n rom._n and_o by_o other_o be_v not_o catholic_a 32._o papist_n teach_v that_o some_o sin_n be_v do_v away_o by_o holy_a water_n and_o without_o repentance_n and_o that_o such_o sin_n deserve_v not_o death_n but_o the_o apostle_n galat._n 3_o show_v he_o to_o be_v accurse_v that_o abide_v not_o in_o all_o the_o word_n of_o the_o law_n to_o do_v they_o and_o rom._n 6._o say_v that_o the_o wage_n of_o sin_n be_v death_n this_o be_v also_o the_o faith_n of_o all_o catholic_n but_o of_o the_o efficacy_n of_o holy_a water_n to_o do_v away_o sin_n true_a catholic_n say_v nothing_o 33._o papist_n offer_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n pro_fw-la redemptione_n animarum_fw-la suarum_fw-la for_o the_o redemption_n of_o their_o soul_n but_o catholic_n do_v not_o hope_v for_o redemption_n but_o by_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n once_o offer_v upon_o the_o cross_n 34._o they_o make_v christian_n eater_n of_o man_n flesh_n and_o drinker_n of_o man_n blood_n real_o and_o literal_o as_o their_o word_n in_o the_o chapter_n ego_fw-la berengarius_fw-la do_v 2._o the_o consecrat_fw-mi do_v import_n but_o our_o saviour_n say_v that_o the_o spirit_n quicken_v and_o saint_n augustine_n tract_n 25._o in_o loan_n show_v that_o christ_n flesh_n be_v not_o to_o be_v receive_v with_o our_o mouth_n or_o tooth_n ut_fw-la quid_fw-la paras_fw-la dentem_fw-la say_v he_o why_o do_v thou_o prepare_v thy_o tooth_n 35._o they_o make_v their_o priest_n creator_n of_o their_o creator_n as_o innocentius_n in_o his_o book_n the_o myster_n missae_fw-la stella_fw-la clericorum_fw-la and_o boner_n in_o his_o speech_n to_o the_o priest_n in_o queen_n mary_n time_n in_o express_a word_n do_v declare_v but_o christian_n and_o catholic_n abhor_v to_o hear_v priest_n call_v creator_n or_o god_n to_o be_v make_v a_o creature_n 36._o they_o make_v the_o priest_n to_o intercede_v for_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n say_v supra_fw-la quae_fw-la propitio_fw-la
platina_n say_v obtain_v of_o phocas_n the_o emperor_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v call_v and_o hold_v the_o head_n of_o other_o church_n the_o council_n of_o rome_n that_o authorize_v the_o popish_a real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v celebrate_v under_o pope_n nicolas_n the_o 2._o some_o 1050._o year_n after_o christ_n the_o 2._o nicene_n council_n that_o establish_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n in_o some_o sort_n be_v assemble_v long_o before_o under_o the_o reign_n of_o irene_n but_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n can_v not_o be_v receive_v in_o the_o western_a church_n till_o long_o after_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n that_o decree_v transubstantiation_n be_v assemble_v in_o the_o time_n of_o innocentius_n the_o 3._o the_o council_n of_o constance_n that_o first_o bring_v in_o the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n and_o the_o subsistence_n of_o accident_n without_o subject_n be_v summon_v about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1414_o the_o synod_n of_o florence_n that_o first_o establish_v the_o 7._o sacrament_n and_o begin_v to_o talk_v of_o their_o form_n and_o confirm_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o purgatory_n publish_v her_o decree_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1439._o the_o act_n of_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n that_o make_v up_o a_o complete_a body_n of_o popery_n be_v confirm_v by_o pius_n the_o 4._o in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1564._o and_o this_o be_v the_o antiquity_n of_o those_o conventicle_n that_o do_v principal_o confirm_v the_o doctrine_n of_o popery_n the_o schoolman_n creep_v into_o the_o church_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1200._o the_o father_n of_o they_o all_o be_v peter_n lombard_n that_o flourish_v some_o 1140._o year_n after_o christ_n the_o canonist_n begin_v after_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n the_o nine_o that_o live_v and_o flourish_v about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n god_n 1230._o the_o chief_a founder_n of_o popery_n be_v the_o pope_n by_o their_o authority_n the_o cardinal_n by_o their_o counseill_n the_o monk_n and_o friar_n by_o their_o book_n and_o preach_v the_o masspriest_n by_o their_o mass_v and_o practise_v the_o dinel_n himself_o by_o his_o craft_n malice_n and_o violence_n the_o pope_n authority_n in_o ecclesiastical_a canse_v be_v not_o great_a before_o the_o time_n of_o boniface_n the_o three_o nor_o in_o temporal_a matter_n before_o gregory_n the_o seven_o boniface_n the_o nine_o as_o theodoric_n à_fw-la niem_fw-la testify_v by_o craft_n enter_v upon_o the_o temporal_a inrisdiction_n of_o rome_n the_o cardinal_n be_v but_o parish_n priest_n until_o such_o time_n as_o the_o pope_n of_o a_o priest_n become_v a_o prince_n the_o monk_n in_o the_o west_n church_n be_v descend_v from_o benet_n of_o nursia_n that_o live_v about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 530._o the_o friar_n arise_v out_o of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1230._o their_o first_o father_n be_v francis_n and_o dominicke_n the_o last_o brood_n of_o friar_n fly_v abroad_o into_o the_o world_n under_o the_o lead_n of_o ignatius_n loyola_n a_o lame_a soldier_n anno_fw-la dom._n 1540_o the_o devil_n be_v bind_v up_o for_o a_o thousand_o year_n count_v from_o the_o time_n of_o constantine_n begin_v to_o be_v loose_v again_o about_o the_o time_n of_o innocent_a the_o three_o and_o by_o all_o fraud_n to_o work_v in_o the_o head_n of_o pope_n friar_n monk_n and_o masspriest_n and_o with_o violence_n to_o make_v opposition_n against_o all_o those_o that_o preach_v the_o truth_n the_o foundation_n therefore_o of_o popery_n be_v so_o late_o lay_v and_o the_o chief_a founder_n thereof_o begin_v to_o stir_v so_o long_o after_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o ancient_a father_n it_o be_v great_a simplicity_n if_o we_o shall_v affirm_v popery_n to_o be_v ancient_a but_o the_o same_o do_v most_o clear_o appear_v by_o the_o particular_a doctrine_n of_o popery_n which_o the_o pope_n factour_n maintain_v against_o us._n first_o they_o hold_v that_o holy_a scripture_n be_v imperfect_a and_o no_o sufficient_a rule_n of_o faith_n bellarmine_n lib._n 4._o de_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la c_o 12._o affirm_v that_o they_o be_v only_o apart_o of_o the_o rule_n but_o none_o but_o heretic_n in_o ancient_a time_n do_v derogate_v from_o scripture_n 2._o they_o teach_v that_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v with_o equal_a affection_n but_o that_o be_v first_o determine_v in_o the_o 4._o session_n of_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n 3._o in_o that_o wicked_a conventicle_n also_o they_o first_o determine_v that_o the_o old_a latin_a vulgar_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n shall_v be_v authentical_a 4._o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v sovereign_a judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o principal_a interpreter_n of_o scripture_n be_v a_o point_n teach_v of_o late_a since_o friar_n begin_v to_o steel_n their_o face_n with_o a_o double_a mask_n of_o impudence_n 5._o before_o the_o late_a conventicle_n of_o trent_n we_o never_o read_v but_o that_o concupiscence_n be_v sin_n both_o in_o the_o regenerate_a and_o unregenerat_a as_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n 6._o stapleton_n in_o his_o preface_n to_o his_o relection_n of_o doctrinal_a principle_n be_v the_o first_o man_n that_o ever_o teach_v that_o we_o hear_v god_n speak_v in_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o the_o church_n be_v found_v upon_o his_o authority_n 7._o the_o first_o that_o ever_o call_v the_o pope_n a_o god_n on_o the_o earth_n be_v the_o pope_n canonist_n they_o likewise_o begin_v first_o to_o call_v he_o the_o head_n and_o spouse_n of_o the_o church_n a_o universal_a bishop_n 8._o the_o papist_n of_o late_a time_n only_o begin_v to_o prohibit_v scripture_n to_o be_v read_v public_o in_o vulgar_a tongue_n and_o to_o repine_v at_o god_n people_n that_o desire_v to_o read_v they_o in_o those_o tongue_n for_o the_o ancient_a father_n exhort_v man_n to_o read_v scripture_n 9_o since_o dioclesian_n time_n we_o do_v not_o read_v of_o any_o that_o burn_v book_n of_o scripture_n beside_o papist_n neither_o do_v any_o since_o his_o time_n hold_v out_o his_o foot_n to_o be_v kiss_v 10._o of_o late_a time_n papist_n believe_v no_o catholic_a church_n but_o that_o which_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n whereas_o in_o time_n past_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v hold_v to_o be_v disperse_v through_o all_o nation_n and_o not_o universal_o subject_v to_o other_o head_n than_o christ_n 11._o the_o romish_a church_n now_o observe_v not_o the_o old_a canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o they_o be_v common_o call_v ex_fw-la 84._o apostolicis_fw-la canonibus_fw-la say_v medina_n de_fw-fr sacror_fw-la hom_n continent_n c._n 105._o quos_fw-la clemens_n romanus_n pontifex_fw-la &_o eorundem_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la discipulus_fw-la in_o unum_fw-la coegit_fw-la vix_fw-la sex_n aut_fw-la octo_fw-la latina_n ecclesia_fw-la nunc_fw-la obseruat_fw-la martin_n perez_n also_o de_fw-la tradit_fw-la part_n 3._o c._n de_fw-fr authorit_fw-fr cc._n apost_n confess_v that_o the_o apostle_n canon_n now_o be_v not_o well_o observe_v 12._o the_o ancient_a christian_n do_v never_o confess_v their_o sin_n to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n to_o s._n michael_n to_z peter_n and_o paul_n and_o other_o saint_n as_o the_o romish_a masspriest_n do_v 13._o of_o late_o the_o clerk_n at_o mass_n have_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o absolve_v the_o priest_n and_o to_o pray_v for_o he_o a_o matter_n both_o strange_a and_o absurd_a 14._o the_o confession_n of_o the_o faith_n set_v out_o by_o pius_n the_o four_o concern_v romish_a tradition_n instification_n by_o work_n the_o seven_o sacrament_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n indulgence_n and_o such_o like_a point_n of_o popery_n be_v never_o hear_v of_o before_o the_o time_n of_o that_o wicked_a pope_n 15._o the_o papist_n can_v not_o show_v that_o any_o christian_a before_o of_o late_o dare_v cut_v out_o the_o second_o commandment_n out_o of_o the_o first_o table_n as_o they_o have_v presume_v to_o do_v in_o their_o short_a catechism_n this_o they_o do_v know_v themselves_o to_o be_v guilty_a in_o worship_v image_n of_o the_o breach_n thereof_o 16._o the_o decree_n of_o sixtus_n the_o four_o concern_v the_o conception_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n without_o original_a sin_n be_v but_o a_o late_a device_n 17._o it_o be_v not_o long_o since_o the_o papist_n teach_v that_o venial_a sin_n be_v do_v away_o with_o holy_a water_n 18._o he_o shall_v be_v very_o shameless_a that_o will_v say_v that_o christian_n in_o time_n past_o do_v whip_v themselves_o either_o go_v in_o procession_n or_o before_o the_o crucifix_n as_o now_o papist_n do_v hope_v to_o redeem_v their_o sin_n with_o their_o own_o blood_n 19_o ancient_a christian_n never_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v sin_n to_o transgress_v
neither_o the_o pope_n nor_o his_o complice_n regard_v counsel_n if_o they_o make_v against_o their_o profit_n or_o pleasure_n bishop_n priest_n deacon_n commit_v adultery_n and_o practise_v usury_n be_v grevous_o punish_v by_o the_o council_n of_o eliberis_n c._n 18._o and_o 20._o but_o now_o these_o offence_n be_v common_a among_o masspriest_n and_o the_o pope_n show_v they_o by_o the_o chapter_n &_o si_fw-la clerici_fw-la d●_n indicijs_fw-la and_o by_o his_o example_n how_o little_a he_o regard_v the_o act_n of_o counsel_n against_o these_o sin_n in_o the_o same_o synod_n can_v 34._o christian_n be_v forbid_v to_o light_a candle_n in_o the_o churchyard_n in_o the_o day_n time_n and_o c._n 36._o to_o set_v up_o picture_n in_o church_n cereos_fw-la per_fw-la diem_fw-la say_v the_o council_n placuit_fw-la in_o coemiterio_fw-la non_fw-la incendi_fw-la and_o again_o placuit_fw-la picturas_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la esse_fw-la non_fw-la debere_fw-la ne_fw-la quod_fw-la colitur_fw-la aut_fw-la adoratur_fw-la in_o parietibus_fw-la depe_v atur_fw-la yet_o papist_n do_v superstitious_o set_v up_o light_n in_o church_n yard_n and_o fill_v their_o church_n with_o image_n and_o picture_n those_o which_o accuse_v their_o brethren_n false_o by_o the_o first_o council_n of_o arles_n c._n 14._o be_v shut_v from_o the_o communion_n to_o then_o die_a day_n de_fw-mi his_o qui_fw-la accusant_fw-la fratres_fw-la suos_fw-la placuit_fw-la say_v the_o council_n choose_fw-la usij_n ad_fw-la exitum_fw-la non_fw-la comunicare_fw-la the_o same_o council_n decree_v that_o no_o bishop_n shall_v tread_v down_o his_o fellow_n bishop_n yet_o the_o pope_n and_o their_o complice_n do_v hire_v parasite_n and_o scrrilous_a companion_n to_o traduce_v and_o false_o to_o accuse_v their_o brethren_n and_o all_o good_a bishop_n be_v now_o tread_v down_o by_o the_o pope_n the_o council_n of_o gangra_n condemn_v those_o that_o dispraise_n marriage_n or_o do_v tax_v he_o that_o eat_v flesh_n or_o that_o despise_v the_o oblation_n of_o a_o marry_a priest_n or_o make_v meeting_n without_o the_o church_n qui_fw-la extra_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la scorsim_fw-la conventus_fw-la cilebrat_fw-la or_o that_o take_v a_o pride_n in_o virginity_n or_o use_v peculiar_a habit_n and_o despise_v those_o that_o use_v common_a apparel_n or_o depart_v from_o their_o parent_n upon_o praetence_n of_o religion_n quicumque_fw-la silij_fw-la à_fw-la parentibus_fw-la praetextu_fw-la divini_fw-la culius_fw-la abscedunt_fw-la the_o same_o likewise_o condemn_v those_o woman_n which_o cut_v their_o hair_n propter_fw-la dminum_fw-la cultum_fw-la for_o religion_n sake_n or_o that_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n and_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n shall_v b_o ring_z in_o new_a precept_n but_o papist_n despise_v matiage_n as_o pollution_n and_o fleshly_a life_n and_o esteem_v monk_n that_o eat_v no_o flesh_n more_o holy_a and_o perfect_a then_o other_o christian_n they_o despise_v also_o the_o oblation_n of_o marry_a priest_n &_o monk_n and_o friar_n have_v their_o conventicle_n apart_o further_o the_o masspriest_n extol_v their_o pretend_a virginity_n and_o monk_n and_o friar_n use_v peculiar_a habit_n and_o despise_v such_o as_o use_v common_a apparel_n child_n among_o they_o depart_v from_o their_o parent_n and_o creep_v into_o monastery_n and_o nun_n cut_n their_o hair_n when_o they_o vow_v to_o enter_v into_o religious_a house_n final_o according_a to_o the_o diversity_n of_o monkish_a sect_n they_o observe_v diverse_a rule_n and_o precept_n without_o warrant_n of_o holy_a scripture_n or_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n and_o do_v many_o thing_n contrary_a to_o holy_a scripture_n the_o second_o council_n of_o arles_n c._n 23._o pronounce_v that_o priest_n to_o be_v sacrilegious_a that_o shall_v suffer_v man_n superstitious_o to_o light_a candle_n or_o to_o worship_n tree_n fountain_n or_o stone_n and_o those_o that_o worship_v such_o thing_n be_v condemn_v as_o infidel_n and_o yet_o maste-priest_n suffer_v christian_n at_o candlemas_n and_o in_o diverse_a procession_n to_o go_v about_o with_o candle_n and_o great_a pilgrimage_n be_v make_v by_o their_o follower_n to_o stock_n and_o stone_n and_o well_n after_o a_o paganicall_a fashion_n the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n c._n 35._o condemn_v such_o as_o worship_v angel_n or_o assemble_v together_o to_o honour_v they_o and_o c._n 36._o that_o use_v exorcism_n or_o enchantment_n or_o that_o read_v book_n in_o the_o church_n that_o be_v not_o canonical_a the_o same_o exclude_v the_o book_n of_o tobia_n judith_n wisdom_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la and_o the_o maccabee_n out_o of_o the_o canon_n the_o which_o act_v forasmuch_o as_o they_o condemn_v the_o superstitious_a worship_n of_o angel_n the_o conjuration_n of_o masspriest_n in_o cast_v out_o of_o devil_n and_o the_o read_n of_o lie_v legend_n and_o the_o false_a canon_n of_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n be_v no_o more_o regard_v by_o papist_n then_o as_o if_o there_o never_o have_v be_v any_o such_o make_v the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n c._n 2._o restrein_v the_o ambition_n of_o bishop_n that_o begin_v to_o stretch_v forth_o their_o hand_n to_o the_o diocese_n of_o their_o neighbour_n and_o c._n 5._o give_v the_o next_o place_n of_o dignity_n after_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n which_o also_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n that_o council_n also_o add_v this_o reason_n because_o constantinople_n be_v call_v new_a rome_n but_o the_o pope_n neither_o regard_v the_o act_n of_o this_o council_n nor_o the_o reason_n thereof_o but_o encroach_v upon_o every_o bishop_n jurisdiction_n call_v himself_o universal_a bishop_n and_o challenge_v his_o authority_n not_o from_o the_o privilege_n of_o the_o city_n but_o from_o christ_n institution_n the_o 3._o council_n of_o carthage_n c._n 24._o decreeth_n that_o nothing_o more_o be_v offer_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n than_o he_o have_v appoint_v to_o wit_n bread_n and_o wine_n mingle_v with_o water_n but_o this_o overthrow_v the_o mass_n utter_o wherein_o the_o masspriest_n say_v they_o offer_v neither_o bread_n nor_o wine_n but_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n the_o same_o synod_n decree_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o metropolitan_a see_v shall_v not_o be_v call_v the_o prince_n of_o priest_n or_o chief_a priest_n or_o any_o such_o title_n which_o overthrow_v the_o pride_n and_o arrogance_n of_o the_o pope_n that_o will_v needs_o be_v call_v the_o chief_a priest_n the_o head_n and_o monarch_n of_o the_o church_n and_o other_o far_o more_o arrogant_a title_n the_o form_n of_o order_v priest_n and_o deacons_n prescribe_a by_o the_o father_n of_o the_o four_o council_n of_o carthage_n the_o pope_n complice_n in_o the_o synod_n of_o florence_n have_v quite_o alter_v likewise_o have_v they_o abolish_v those_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n that_o concern_v his_o house_n apparel_n study_n preach_v nay_o they_o account_n he_o now_o a_o bishop_n sufficient_a that_o preach_v not_o if_o he_o be_v formal_o grease_v and_o apparel_v in_o the_o 100_o canon_n woman_n be_v forbid_v to_o baptize_v mulier_fw-la baptizare_fw-la non_fw-la praesumat_fw-la the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la contrariwise_o allow_v woman_n to_o baptize_v the_o fist_n council_n of_o carthage_n c._n 14._o reprove_v altar_n erect_v by_o vain_a reuclation_n and_o dream_n and_o it_o mean_v such_o as_o be_v suppose_v to_o be_v make_v over_o some_o martyr_n relic_n but_o that_o be_v the_o case_n of_o many_o popish_a altar_n who_o be_v erect_v for_o the_o most_o part_n upon_o supposal_n of_o relic_n and_o vain_a dream_n by_o the_o 4._o canon_n of_o the_o first_o council_n of_o toledo_n it_o appear_v that_o subdeacons_n marry_a wife_n the_o same_o synod_n condemn_v those_o that_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n and_o cat_n it_o not_o and_o which_o believe_v christ_n to_o have_v a_o imaginary_a body_n such_o as_o that_o be_v which_o the_o papist_n suppose_v to_o be_v in_o the_o eucharist_n the_o council_n of_o milevis_n c._n 22._o forbid_v appeal_n to_o rome_n ad_fw-la transmarina_fw-la qui_fw-la putaverit_fw-la appellandum_fw-la à_fw-la nullo_fw-la infra_fw-la africam_fw-la in_o communionem_fw-la suscipiatur_fw-la this_o canon_n therefore_o can_v stand_v with_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n the_o council_n of_o agatha_n c._n 13._o forbid_v nun_n to_o be_v veil_v before_o the_o age_n of_o forty_o year_n the_o synagogue_n of_o rome_n admit_v they_o before_o twenty_o and_o few_o after_o forty_o the_o same_o council_n separate_v the_o monastery_n of_o man_n and_o woman_n the_o papist_n put_v they_o near_o together_o the_o council_n of_o oreuge_n pronounce_v they_o guilty_a of_o pelagianisme_n that_o say_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o soul_n remain_v after_o the_o fall_n of_o adam_n and_o that_o a_o man_n can_v do_v that_o which_o be_v good_a of_o himself_o the_o 8._o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o turon_n show_v that_o bishop_n have_v wife_n &_o dwell_v with_o they_o although_o they_o be_v command_v to_o use_v they_o as_o sister_n the_o 3._o council_n of_o toledo_n
all_o the_o father_n almost_o deny_v public_a penance_n to_o priest_n and_o deacon_n fall_v into_o notorious_a crime_n but_o the_o popish_a faction_n regard_v they_o not_o one_o jot_n bellarmine_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr eucharist_n c._n 11._o say_v that_o augustine_n do_v not_o well_o weigh_v these_o word_n of_o luke_n i_o will_v drink_v no_o more_o of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o vine_n augustine_n lib._n 22._o the_o civet_n dei_fw-la c._n 10._o say_v that_o christian_n do_v not_o worship_v martyr_n or_o erect_v remple_n in_o their_o honour_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr morib_n eccles_n c._n 3._o he_o deni_v that_o we_o be_v to_o adore_v any_o ereature_n hierome_n also_o join_v with_o he_o in_o this_o opinion_n mepi_v ad_fw-la riparium_fw-la but_o the_o popish_a sect_n do_v not_o regard_v what_o they_o say_v nor_o follow_v their_o doctrine_n final_o it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n to_o show_v the_o father_n to_o be_v adverse_a to_o popery_n in_o all_o material_a controversy_n but_o what_o shall_v we_o need_v to_o do_v it_o see_v their_o late_a corruption_n and_o false_a allegation_n of_o father_n do_v plain_o testify_v that_o they_o do_v not_o hope_v for_o victory_n if_o the_o father_n may_v be_v true_o allege_v of_o late_o they_o have_v set_v out_o index_n expurgatory_n teach_v printer_n how_o to_o falsify_v father_n sixtus_n senensis_n inepi_v ad_fw-la pium_fw-la 5._o ante_fw-la biblioth_n sanct_n show_v how_o that_o pope_n have_v cause_v the_o father_n to_o be_v purge_v or_o rather_o corrupt_v expurgari_fw-la fecisti_fw-la omnium_fw-la authorum_fw-la catholicorum_fw-la say_v he_o &_o praecipuè_fw-la veterum_fw-la patrum_fw-la scripta_fw-la pamelut_n have_v most_o shameful_o corrupt_v cyprian_n and_o the_o like_a course_n all_o papist_n take_v with_o the_o book_n of_o the_o father_n late_o set_v forth_o sometime_o also_o they_o confess_v the_o corruption_n of_o father_n aeneas_n sylu._n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr gest_n council_n basil_n show_v how_o pope_n stand_v upon_o these_o word_n vocaberis_fw-la cephas_n and_o launch_v into_o the_o deep_a and_o such_o like_a neglect_v the_o exposition_n of_o all_o the_o holy_a doctor_n posthabitis_fw-la omnino_fw-la omnium_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la expositionibus_fw-la alan_n chartier_n say_v they_o reject_v the_o holy_a doctrine_n of_o father_n sanct●●_n patrum_fw-la doctrine_n reiectae_fw-la &_o posthabitae_fw-la sunt_fw-la matth._n paris_n in_o wilhelmo_n conquest_n speak_v of_o hildebrande_n decree_v against_o marry_a priest_n say_v it_o be_v make_v without_o consideration_n and_o against_o the_o judgement_n of_o holy_a father_n inconsiderato_fw-la iudicio_fw-la contra_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la patrum_fw-la sententiam_fw-la chap._n xix_o that_o popish_a religion_n be_v never_o testify_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christian_a martyr_n strange_a it_o be_v if_o the_o martyr_n of_o christ_n shall_v turn_v from_o christ_n and_o testify_v for_o antichrist_n yet_o because_o the_o adversary_n of_o truth_n do_v boast_v of_o ancient_a martyr_n and_o bristol_n in_o his_o 15._o motive_n do_v place_n martyr_n as_o setter_n forth_o of_o the_o pope_n glorious_a kingdom_n we_o be_v brief_o to_o show_v that_o the_o testification_n of_o martyr_n make_v nothing_o for_o popish_a religion_n and_o that_o appear_v first_o for_o that_o the_o papist_n refuse_v to_o be_v try_v by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v principal_a martyr_n second_o we_o have_v show_v that_o the_o principal_a point_n of_o popery_n be_v neither_o teach_v nor_o receive_v during_o the_o time_n of_o the_o primitive_a martyr_n nor_o many_o age_n after_o and_o that_o many_o point_n now_o teach_v and_o receive_v among_o papist_n be_v then_o refuse_v as_o heresy_n three_o papist_n adore_v idol_n and_o burn_v incense_n unto_o they_o but_o the_o ancient_a martyr_n be_v therefore_o martyr_v &_o cruel_o put_v to_o death_n because_o they_o will_v not_o consent_v to_o the_o worship_n of_o idol_n nor_o burn_v incense_n to_o they_o four_o the_o practice_n of_o papist_n declare_v that_o they_o be_v more_o like_a to_o the_o heathen_a emperor_n and_o persecutor_n of_o christian_n then_o to_o the_o ancient_a martyr_n of_o christ_n church_n for_o as_o they_o massacre_v christian_n for_o maintenance_n of_o the_o apostolic_a faith_n so_o do_v the_o pope_n and_o their_o complice_n massacre_v all_o that_o stand_v for_o the_o same_o as_o they_o by_o sword_n and_o fire_n seek_v to_o uphold_v idolatry_n so_o do_v these_o as_o they_o hate_v they_o deadly_a which_o teach_v the_o true_a faith_n so_o do_v these_o final_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o faith_n publish_v by_o pius_n the_o four_o and_o that_o doctrine_n which_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n have_v of_o late_o confirm_v and_o command_v to_o be_v teach_v and_o believe_v be_v in_o many_o point_v contrary_a to_o the_o faith_n of_o ancient_a martyr_n and_o in_o all_o point_n of_o controversy_n betwixt_o papist_n and_o we_o utter_o unknown_a to_o they_o the_o holy_a apostle_n commend_v scripture_n and_o so_o do_v ancient_a martyr_n but_o papist_n accuse_v they_o of_o insufficiency_n obscurity_n flexibility_n and_o call_v they_o a_o nose_n of_o wax_n and_o a_o kill_a letter_n ancient_a martyr_n be_v burn_v and_o put_v to_o death_n because_o they_o will_v not_o deliver_v holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v burn_v the_o papist_n do_v burn_v scripture_n and_o suspect_v such_o for_o heretic_n as_o read_v they_o in_o vulgar_a tongue_n the_o apostle_n and_o primitive_a martyr_n believe_v the_o scripture_n because_o they_o come_v from_o god_n the_o papist_n will_v not_o have_v scripture_n to_o be_v belecue_v unless_o they_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o pope_n they_o teach_v neither_o heresy_n nor_o impiety_n nor_o novelty_n but_o popish_a religion_n as_o before_o be_v declare_v be_v full_a of_o heresy_n impiety_n novelty_n in_o ancient_a time_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v martyr_n now_o those_o that_o call_v themselves_o their_o successor_n do_v murder_n god_n saint_n and_o make_v they_o martyr_n ancient_a martyr_n teach_v that_o one_o god_n be_v to_o be_v adore_v the_o papist_n give_v divine_a honour_n to_o the_o cross_n and_o crucifix_n and_o call_v the_o sacrament_n their_o lord_n and_o god_n ancient_a martyr_n do_v break_v down_o image_n now_o the_o papist_n erect_v they_o fall_v down_o before_o they_o and_o worship_v they_o final_o ancient_a martyr_n never_o believe_v that_o either_o dog_n or_o hog_n can_v eat_v christ_n body_n or_o that_o the_o same_o be_v in_o any_o place_n where_o it_o can_v neither_o be_v feel_v nor_o see_v or_o that_o the_o same_o be_v both_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o every_o pix_n at_o one_o time_n or_o that_o bread_n be_v transubstantiate_v into_o christ_n body_n or_o that_o christian_n do_v with_o their_o tooth_n eat_v man_n flesh_n or_o with_o their_o throat_n swallow_v man_n blood_n or_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v lord_n and_o monarch_n of_o the_o church_n or_o that_o he_o can_v fetch_v soul_n out_o of_o purgatory_n or_o that_o there_o be_v a_o treasure_n of_o saint_n merit_n out_o of_o which_o indulgence_n be_v grant_v or_o that_o christian_n be_v justify_v by_o extreme_a unction_n or_o eat_v fish_n and_o such_o like_a popish_a devise_n neither_o be_v it_o material_a that_o these_o holy_a martyr_n be_v put_v in_o popish_a calendar_n for_o the_o jew_n brag_v of_o their_o father_n abraham_n and_o adorn_v the_o sepulchre_n of_o the_o prophet_n although_o they_o neither_o abode_n in_o the_o faith_n of_o abraham_n nor_o follow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o prophet_n further_o bristol_n tell_v we_o that_o s._n stephen_n help_v all_o those_o that_o seek_v unto_o he_o but_o his_o proof_n be_v draw_v out_o of_o legend_n and_o certain_a counterfeit_a sermon_n of_o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o 22._o chapter_n the_o civet_n dei_fw-la c._n 8._o there_o be_v no_o such_o matter_n and_o yet_o these_o report_n that_o be_v there_o insert_v seem_v to_o be_v none_o of_o s._n augustine_n but_o suppose_v certain_a superstitious_a person_n shall_v pray_v to_o s._n stephen_n yet_o s._n stephen_n never_o teach_v they_o so_o to_o do_v nor_o allow_v such_o form_n of_o prayer_n last_o he_o talk_v of_o fisher_n more_o the_o charterhouse_n monk_n and_o diverse_a that_o die_v in_o king_n henry_n the_o 8._o &_o the_o late_a queen_n reign_n for_o the_o pope_n cause_n and_o tell_v we_o that_o they_o be_v of_o his_o religion_n but_o it_o be_v first_o deny_v that_o they_o be_v martyr_n and_o next_o that_o fisher_n and_o more_o be_v of_o the_o modern_a romish_a religion_n the_o first_o be_v prove_v for_o that_o they_o die_v for_o the_o pope_n and_o not_o for_o christ_n second_o they_o die_v as_o traitor_n either_o by_o open_a rebellion_n or_o by_o overt_a act_n oppugn_v the_o prince_n authority_n the_o second_o be_v evident_a for_o that_o diverse_a of_o they_o die_v before_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n which_o have_v now_o publish_v a_o new_a form_n of_o faith_n and_o decree_v many_o thing_n
follower_n to_o have_v other_o god_n the_o law_n forbid_v we_o to_o make_v grave_v image_n and_o similitude_n to_o the_o intent_n to_o worship_v they_o the_o pope_n command_v his_o follower_n to_o make_v they_o and_o to_o worship_v they_o and_o burn_v such_o as_o teach_v contrary_a the_o apostle_n call_v concupiscence_n in_o himself_o sin_n the_o masspriest_n of_o trent_n deny_v it_o to_o be_v sin_n in_o the_o regenerate_a our_o saviour_n in_o the_o five_o of_o john_n command_v his_o follower_n to_o search_v the_o scripture_n these_o follower_n of_o antichrist_n forbid_v christian_n to_o search_v the_o scripture_n translate_v into_o vulgar_a tongue_n without_o licence_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n after_o the_o blessing_n he_o say_v take_v and_o eat_v but_o these_o good_a fellow_n say_v gape_v and_o gaze_v on_o the_o priest_n say_v mass_n and_o eat_v not_o but_o rather_o keep_v the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o pix_n he_o say_v do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o they_o do_v it_o in_o remembrance_n of_o angel_n and_o saint_n and_o observe_v not_o that_o form_n which_o he_o prescribe_v the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n do_v receive_v and_o eat_v the_o sacrament_n the_o false_a apostle_n of_o antichrist_n command_v their_o scholar_n to_o heave_v it_o to_o adore_v it_o and_o to_o carry_v it_o about_o in_o procession_n in_o the_o conventicle_n of_o constance_n the_o pope_n adherent_n establish_v the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n and_o where_o christ_n say_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o they_o say_v drink_v not_o all_o of_o this_o christ_n teach_v his_o disciple_n to_o pray_v to_o his_o father_n and_o to_o say_v pater_fw-la noster_fw-la they_o teach_v their_o disciple_n to_o pray_v to_o our_o lady_n and_o to_o say_v mater_fw-la nostra_fw-la or_o at_o least_o matter_n miscricordie_o god_n in_o the_o 50._o psalm_n say_v invoca_fw-la i_o call_v upon_o i_o and_o the_o apostle_n 1._o tim._n 2._o show_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o only_a mediator_n betwixt_o god_n and_o man_n they_o teach_v we_o to_o call_v upon_o saint_n and_o say_v they_o be_v our_o intercessor_n when_o s._n john_n apocalyps_n 22._o will_v have_v worship_v the_o angel_n he_o say_v to_o he_o see_v thou_o do_v it_o not_o these_o say_v see_v thou_o do_v it_o the_o apostle_n 1._o cor._n 14._o command_v he_o that_o speak_v in_o a_o strange_a tongue_n or_o that_o be_v not_o understand_v to_o keep_v silence_n in_o the_o church_n he_o add_v that_o prayer_n in_o a_o strange_a tongue_n or_o without_o understan_v be_v without_o fruit_n but_o the_o romanist_n contrary_a do_v enjoin_v their_o priest_n to_o read_v scripture_n and_o to_o say_v service_n in_o latin_a which_o of_o the_o vulgar_a sort_n be_v not_o understand_v coster_n in_o his_o enchir_n c._n de_fw-la precibus_fw-la latinè_fw-la recitandis_fw-la say_v that_o he_o that_o pray_v in_o latin_a albeit_o he_o understand_v not_o what_o he_o pray_v receive_v fruit_n by_o his_o prayer_n hune_v tertium_fw-la fructum_fw-la orationis_fw-la non_fw-la minus_fw-la percipit_fw-la say_v he_o qui_fw-la non_fw-la intellecta_fw-la àse_fw-la lingua_fw-la precatur_fw-la quàm_fw-la qui_fw-la verborum_fw-la intelligentiam_fw-la assequitur_fw-la s._n paul_n 2._o tim._n 3._o teach_v we_o that_o scripture_n be_v able_a to_o make_v the_o man_n of_o god_n perfect_a bellarmine_n lib._n 4._o de_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la say_v they_o be_v imperfect_a and_o insufficient_a without_o tradition_n the_o apostle_n hebr._n 1._o say_v god_n speak_v by_o the_o prophet_n and_o this_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v when_o the_o holy_a prophet_n deliver_v scripture_n to_o god_n people_n staple_n ton_fw-fr de_fw-fr author_n eccles_n in_o diverse_a place_n deni_v that_o god_n speak_v in_o scripture_n and_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o he_o speak_v in_o the_o pope_n both_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n teach_v that_o the_o just_a shall_v live_v by_o faith_n but_o the_o masspriest_n say_v faith_n of_o itself_o be_v dead_a and_o that_o the_o life_n and_o form_n thereof_o be_v charity_n the_o scripture_n say_v it_o be_v better_a to_o marry_v than_o to_o burn_v the_o papist_n teach_v that_o it_o be_v better_a to_o burn_v with_o lust_n then_o to_o marry_v after_o the_o vow_n make_v of_o single_a life_n the_o apostle_n 1._o tim._n 3._o will_v have_v a_o bishop_n choose_v that_o be_v the_o hush_a and_o of_o one_o wise_a and_o hebr._n 13._o say_v that_o marriage_n be_v honourable_a among_o all_o the_o papist_n admit_v no_o marry_a man_n live_v with_o their_o wife_n to_o be_v bishop_n and_o count_v marriage_n in_o priest_n pollution_n the_o apostle_n say_v the_o law_n be_v the_o ministration_n of_o death_n and_o that_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n no_o flesh_n be_v justify_v the_o masspriest_n teach_v their_o follower_n to_o seek_v for_o life_n in_o the_o law_n and_o by_o the_o work_v thereof_o say_v that_o all_o the_o faithful_a be_v to_o be_v justify_v final_o popery_n in_o effect_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o contradiction_n in_o most_o thing_n to_o the_o word_n of_o holy_a scripture_n chap._n xxii_o that_o the_o founder_n and_o defender_n of_o popery_n do_v most_o wicked_o abuse_v holy_a scripture_n all_o which_o notwithstanding_o the_o papist_n for_o proof_n of_o their_o false_a doctrine_n do_v allege_v scripture_n but_o yet_o so_o as_o any_o man_n may_v see_v if_o he_o be_v not_o wilful_o blind_a that_o they_o wicked_o abuse_v scripture_n and_o wrest_v they_o contrary_a to_o their_o true_a sense_n and_o meaning_n auentinus_n lib._n 7._o annal_n boior_fw-la speak_v of_o gregory_n the_o seven_o say_v he_o force_v the_o scripture_n to_o serve_v his_o purpose_n by_o false_a interpretation_n divinas_fw-la scripturas_fw-la falsò_fw-la interpretando_fw-la s●●e_z causae_fw-la seruire_fw-la coegit_fw-la and_o aeneas_n silvius_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr gest_n council_n basil_n speak_v of_o other_o pope_n say_v they_o expound_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n not_o as_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n require_v but_o according_a to_o their_o own_o humour_n verba_fw-la christi_fw-la non_fw-la prout_fw-la sensus_fw-la sancti_fw-la spiritus_fw-la exposcit_fw-la sed_fw-la suopte_a ingenio_fw-la interpretantur_fw-la so_o in_o time_n past_o false_a teacher_n as_o s._n peter_n testify_v 2._o pet._n 3._o pervert_v scripture_n to_o their_o own_o destruction_n and_o i_o will_v to_o god_n that_o it_o be_v to_o their_o own_o destruction_n only_o but_o helas_n such_o seducer_n destroy_v both_o themselves_o and_o their_o credulous_a follower_n innocentius_n 3._o c._n solitae_fw-la de_fw-fr maior_fw-la &_o ob_v expound_v these_o word_n hieremy_n 1._o behold_v i_o have_v place_v thou_o over_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n of_o the_o pope_n as_o if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v appoint_v he_o over_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n and_o make_v he_o superior_a to_o the_o emperor_n whereas_o he_o seem_v rather_o to_o be_v appoint_v by_o the_o devil_n than_o the_o holy_a ghost_n likewise_o these_o word_n genes_n 1._o god_n make_v two_o great_a light_n in_o the_o firmament_n of_o heaven_n the_o great_a to_o rule_v the_o day_n the_o lesser_a to_o rule_v the_o night_n he_o suppose_v to_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o pope_n and_o emperor_n as_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o great_a light_n rule_v by_o day_n and_o the_o emperor_n the_o less_o light_a rule_v by_o night_n in_o the_o chapter_n novit_fw-la de_fw-la iudicijs_fw-la he_o do_v understand_v these_o word_n deut._n 1._o thou_o shall_v judge_v the_o great_a as_o the_o small_a neither_o shall_v thou_o accept_v any_o man_n person_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o of_o king_n as_o if_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n the_o pope_n be_v make_v judge_n of_o king_n and_o be_v as_o well_o to_o over-rule_v they_o as_o the_o most_o contemptible_a mass-priest_n of_o his_o own_o rascal_n retinue_n again_o where_o we_o read_v 1._o cor_fw-la 5_o that_o the_o servant_n stand_v or_o fall_v to_o his_o own_o master_n he_o conclude_v in_o the_o chap_a nimis_fw-la de_fw-fr iureiurando_fw-la that_o lay-man_n be_v not_o to_o compel_v clerk_n to_o take_v oath_n before_o they_o as_o if_o all_o clerk_n be_v the_o pope_n slave_n and_o to_o fall_v down_o before_o he_o and_o to_o serve_v he_o clement_n the_o five_o c._n si_fw-la dominum_fw-la de_fw-fr reliq_n &_o venerat_fw-la sanct_n out_o of_o these_o word_n praise_n god_n in_o his_o saint_n conclude_v that_o we_o be_v to_o keep_v the_o feast_n of_o corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la day_n boniface_n the_o 8._o extr_n de_fw-fr maior_fw-la &_o ob_v c._n unam_fw-la sanctam_fw-la conclude_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o all_o man_n because_o we_o read_v genes_n 1._o that_o in_o the_o beginning_n and_o not_o in_o the_o beginning_n god_n make_v heaven_n and_o earth_n as_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o beginning_n mention_v in_o that_o place_n likewise_o of_o these_o word_n 1._o cor._n 2._o the_o spiritual_a man_n judge_v all_o and_o be_v judge_v of_o none_o he_o conclude_v very_o wise_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v judge_v
for_o it_o ambrose_n catharine_n tractat_fw-la de_fw-fr imaginibus_fw-la say_v god_n prohibit_v image_n simple_o but_o that_o this_o prohibition_n be_v positive_a other_o deny_v both_o image_n to_o be_v forbid_v and_o the_o second_o commandment_n to_o be_v positive_a occam_n maior_n and_o richardus_fw-la be_v of_o opinion_n that_o a_o sacrament_n can_v be_v define_v scotus_n in_o 4._o do_v 1._o q._n 2._o hold_v that_o it_o may_v be_v define_v imperfect_o ledesma_n in_o tract_n de_fw-fr sacrament_n in_o genere_fw-la q._n 1._o art_n 2._o say_v it_o may_v proper_o be_v define_v final_o to_o show_v the_o contradiction_n of_o papist_n we_o need_v to_o seek_v no_o further_o than_o to_o bellarmine_n who_o in_o every_o controversy_n bring_v in_o different_a opinion_n of_o man_n of_o his_o side_n gardiner_z a_o pillar_n of_o popery_n do_v oftentimes_o contradict_v himself_o and_o his_o fellow_n sometime_o he_o swear_v against_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n sometime_o like_o a_o forswear_a creature_n he_o stand_v for_o it_o sometime_o he_o consent_v to_o the_o dissolution_n of_o monastery_n as_o sink_v of_o sodomy_n and_o all_o tibaldrie_n and_o villainy_n sometime_o be_v speak_v for_o they_o his_o book_n entitle_v marcus_n constantius_n be_v full_a of_o contradiction_n m._n fox_n have_v score_v up_o great_a multitude_n the_o contradiction_n of_o robert_n parson_n in_o his_o book_n of_o three_o conversion_n i_o have_v note_v in_o my_o answer_n to_o that_o treatise_n the_o whole_a mass_n also_o of_o popery_n do_v consist_v of_o contrary_a piece_n as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o the_o contradiction_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o mass_n of_o purgatory_n of_o indulgence_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o diverse_a other_o principal_a point_n and_o have_v prove_v the_o same_o in_o treatise_n of_o that_o argument_n for_o example_n they_o say_v the_o mass_n be_v a_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n and_o yet_o teach_v that_o every_o priest_n do_v real_o offer_v and_o drink_v christ_n blood_n sometime_o they_o say_v the_o sacrifice_n be_v but_o one_o sacrifice_n yet_o in_o the_o canon_n they_o say_v sacrifice_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n sometime_o they_o say_v the_o priest_n only_o offer_v this_o sacrifice_n but_o in_o the_o canon_n they_o make_v the_o people_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n in_o the_o canon_n they_o pray_v that_o angel_n may_v carry_v christ_n body_n unto_o god_n high_a altar_n but_o all_o confess_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v in_o heaven_n before_o there_o also_o they_o make_v the_o priest_n a_o mediator_n for_o christ._n but_o where_o they_o speak_v sober_o they_o make_v christ_n a_o mediator_n both_o for_o the_o priest_n and_o other_o in_o heaven_n they_o say_v christ_n be_v visible_a and_o palpable_a on_o the_o altar_n they_o make_v he_o invisible_a and_o impalpable_a they_o say_v the_o mass_n be_v a_o external_a sacrifice_n yet_o no_o man_n ever_o yet_o can_v see_v christ_n body_n external_o sacrifice_v in_o purgatory_n they_o say_v soul_n suffer_v extreme_a pain_n but_o in_o the_o mass_n they_o say_v they_o sl●epe_v in_o peace_n they_o teach_v that_o christian_n may_v perform_v the_o law_n of_o god_n perfect_o but_o they_o will_v not_o grant_v that_o they_o may_v live_v without_o sin_n which_o be_v all_o one_o talk_v of_o auricular_a confession_n they_o make_v it_o necessary_a but_o in_o the_o chap._n petrus_n doluit_fw-la and_o lachrymae_fw-la do_v 1._o de_fw-la poenit_fw-la they_o deny_v it_o the_o pope_n call_v himself_o servant_n of_o servant_n yet_o do_v he_o take_v upon_o he_o as_o lord_n of_o lord_n order_n they_o say_v be_v one_o sacrament_n yet_o they_o teach_v also_o that_o there_o be_v seven_o order_n and_o every_o one_o of_o they_o a_o sacrament_n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o they_o shall_v make_v one_o seven_o and_o seven_o one_o the_o pope_n they_o say_v be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o they_o shall_v teach_v that_o their_o church_n in_o the_o vacatio_fw-la nis_fw-la headless_a if_o then_o the_o catholic_a faith_n be_v one_o and_o those_o that_o profess_v the_o faith_n agree_v in_o one_o then_o can_v popery_n be_v the_o true_a catholic_a faith_n that_o contain_v so_o many_o contradiction_n chap._n xxvii_o that_o popery_n be_v a_o most_o foolish_a and_o absurd_a religion_n as_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v full_a of_o wisdom_n and_o give_v we_o a_o true_a understanding_n so_o when_o man_n of_o his_o own_o brain_n undertake_v to_o add_v unto_o his_o commandment_n the_o same_o in_o proof_n fall_v out_o to_o be_v nothing_o but_o vanity_n and_o foolery_n the_o same_o we_o sin_v verify_v in_o the_o addition_n of_o the_o superfluous_a religion_n of_o papist_n for_o although_o it_o have_v a_o show_n of_o wisdom_n as_o the_o voluntary_a worship_n of_o angel_n have_v of_o which_o the_o apostle_n coloss_n 2._o speak_v yet_o compare_v with_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n reveal_v in_o the_o gospel_n it_o be_v mere_a foolery_n for_o first_o what_o be_v more_o foolish_a then_o to_o forsake_v the_o live_a spring_n of_o holy_a scripture_n out_o of_o which_o do_v sally_v water_n of_o life_n and_o to_o follow_v after_o the_o puddle_n stream_n of_o romish_a tradition_n of_o scripture_n we_o be_v assure_v that_o they_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o no_o man_n can_v affirm_v that_o of_o romish_a tradition_n or_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la that_o either_o profess_v piety_n or_o love_v truth_n be_v it_o not_o then_o strange_a that_o any_o christian_n shall_v be_v so_o foolish_a as_o to_o match_v the_o word_n of_o man_n with_o god_n word_n and_o where_o we_o have_v a_o certain_a rule_n to_o seek_v for_o a_o break_a uncertain_a and_o crooked_a rule_n again_o it_o be_v most_o absurd_a not_o to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n without_o the_o pope_n warrant_n but_o to_o say_v that_o christian_n be_v not_o to_o believe_v in_o god_n nor_o in_o christ_n jesus_n nor_o to_o receive_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n unless_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v deliver_v they_o unto_o we_o be_v not_o only_o a_o piece_n of_o great_a foolery_n but_o also_o a_o very_a high_a strain_n of_o madness_n and_o yet_o this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o popery_n for_o stapleton_n say_v that_o the_o church_n must_v needs_o consign_v the_o scripture_n unto_o we_o and_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n both_o he_o and_o other_o give_v to_o the_o pope_n likewise_o in_o their_o catechism_n the_o papist_n signify_v that_o faith_n be_v of_o thing_n only_o propose_v to_o we_o by_o the_o church_n so_o that_o if_o the_o church_n propose_v not_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n we_o be_v not_o to_o believe_v they_o if_o these_o man_n teach_v truth_n further_o this_o show_v the_o romish_a church_n to_o consist_v of_o a_o pack_n of_o infidel_n for_o if_o the_o same_o believe_v not_o without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n than_o do_v she_o believe_v nothing_o of_o christ_n see_v the_o papist_n acknowledge_v no_o other_o church_n but_o that_o of_o rome_n and_o no_o church_n can_v teach_v itself_o final_o this_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v that_o the_o law_n of_o the_o prince_n be_v not_o to_o be_v receive_v unless_o it_o be_v propose_v by_o the_o crier_n or_o other_o such_o like_a officer_n the_o masspriest_n of_o trent_n sess_v 4._o most_o absurd_o prefer_v the_o old_a latin_a vulgar_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n before_o the_o original_a text_n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o they_o shall_v prefer_v s._n hierome_n and_o other_o interpreter_n before_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n and_o the_o stream_n before_o the_o fountain_n general_o they_o forbid_v scripture_n to_o be_v read_v public_o in_o vulgar_a tongue_n but_o they_o permit_v most_o fabulous_a legend_n to_o be_v read_v public_o the_o holy_a scripture_n they_o will_v not_o permit_v to_o be_v read_v in_o vulgar_a tongue_n of_o the_o multitude_n without_o licence_n but_o they_o be_v content_a that_o any_o of_o their_o follower_n shall_v read_v the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la or_o the_o miracle_n of_o their_o god_n of_o paste_n or_o the_o history_n of_o our_o lady_n of_o loreto_n and_o other_o such_o lie_a legend_n without_o licence_n to_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v mere_a foolery_n for_o grant_v that_o and_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o church_n be_v sometime_o without_o head_n as_o in_o the_o time_n of_o vacation_n of_o the_o papacy_n and_o sometime_o a_o monster_n with_o two_o or_o three_o head_n as_o when_o two_o or_o three_o pope_n reign_n at_o once_o and_o sometime_o a_o mad_a church_n as_o have_v a_o mad_a and_o frantic_a head_n the_o church_n they_o say_v albeit_o catholic_a yet_o be_v always_o visible_a but_o this_o be_v grant_v it_o follow_v that_o universal_a thing_n may_v be_v the_o object_n of_o sense_n and_o that_o the_o church_n of_o
nor_o other_o virtue_n but_o only_o that_o he_o profess_v outward_o the_o romish_a religion_n and_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n a_o matter_n of_o no_o great_a difficulty_n if_o a_o man_n take_v upon_o he_o the_o habit_n of_o a_o monk_n or_o a_o friar_n they_o make_v it_o a_o second_o baptisate_n and_o that_o state_n they_o say_v be_v a_o state_n of_o perfection_n so_o you_o see_v how_o easy_a a_o matter_n it_o be_v with_o papist_n not_o only_o to_o be_v a_o true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n but_o also_o a_o perfect_a christian_n for_o who_o can_v take_v upon_o he_o a_o friar_n or_o monk_n weed_n in_o the_o apology_n for_o herodotus_n it_o be_v testify_v that_o a_o certain_a friar_n teach_v that_o the_o only_a way_n for_o the_o devil_n to_o be_v save_v be_v to_o put_v on_o saint_n francis_n his_o cowl_n further_o they_o teach_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n to_o grant_v pardon_n for_o fornication_n adultery_n incest_n rape_n murder_n perjury_n treachery_n sodomitry_n maranisme_n and_o all_o vice_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o pope_n penitentiary_n tax_n and_o that_o for_o no_o great_a sum_n of_o money_n now_o what_o more_o easy_a then_o to_o obtain_v the_o pope_n pardon_n if_o a_o man_n hear_v mass_n every_o sunday_n &_o holiday_n and_o confess_v at_o shrovetide_n and_o be_v housel_v at_o easter_n and_o fast_o from_o flesh_n and_o observe_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o romish_a precept_n and_o ceremony_n he_o be_v take_v for_o a_o good_a catholic_a but_o these_o be_v matter_n to_o be_v perform_v without_o any_o great_a difficulty_n the_o papist_n also_o teach_v that_o christian_n be_v justify_v by_o extreme_a unction_n which_o be_v a_o matter_n to_o be_v obtain_v at_o every_o pilled_a priestes-hand_n they_o promise_v also_o general_a indulgence_n to_o such_o as_o visit_v certain_a church_n at_o rome_n and_o else_o where_o which_o may_v be_v do_v with_o small_a labour_n now_o for_o venial_a sin_n they_o say_v that_o knock_v of_o the_o breast_n and_o holy_a water_n be_v remedy_n sufficient_a for_o such_o matter_n they_o say_v christian_n need_v not_o to_o repent_v they_o they_o hold_v also_o that_o holy_a water_n be_v good_a to_o drive_v away_o devil_n but_o in_o no_o place_n be_v there_o want_v of_o holy_a water_n if_o a_o man_n live_v all_o his_o life_n most_o lewd_o and_o loose_o yet_o if_o he_o confess_v to_o a_o priest_n when_o he_o lie_v a_o die_a and_o promise_v satisfaction_n he_o fail_v not_o to_o have_v absolution_n and_o if_o he_o satisfy_v not_o in_o this_o life_n yet_o they_o hold_v that_o either_o by_o mass_n or_o indulgence_n he_o may_v be_v deliver_v out_o of_o purgatory_n but_o indulgence_n be_v not_o dear_a and_o mass_n be_v dog_n cheap_a a_o trental_a be_v not_o value_v at_o 30._o penny_n nor_o whole_a fardel_n at_o great_a sum_n by_o every_o small_a good_a work_n nay_o by_o eat_a red-herring_n and_o saltfish_n on_o friday_n and_o such_o observance_n they_o hope_v to_o merit_v heaven_n so_o broad_a they_o make_v the_o way_n to_o heaven_n and_o so_o easy_a a_o matter_n to_o come_v thither_o final_o as_o eunomius_n promise_v they_o that_o profess_v his_o faith_n reward_n in_o heaven_n howsoever_o they_o live_v so_o likewise_o do_v the_o papist_n promise_v heaven_n to_o their_o follower_n so_o they_o profess_v and_o set_v forward_o the_o pope_n cause_n whether_o they_o be_v murderer_n of_o king_n or_o massacrer_n or_o rebel_n or_o filthy_a whore-monger_n or_o sodomite_n it_o skill_v not_o the_o masspriest_n promise_v not_o only_o pardon_v but_o also_o reward_v in_o heaven_n so_o they_o die_v in_o the_o pope_n obedience_n and_o profess_v his_o religion_n this_o religion_n therefore_o that_o give_v such_o liberty_n to_o sinner_n and_o lead_v they_o such_o pleasant_a way_n feed_v the_o eye_n of_o people_n with_o sight_n their_o ear_n with_o pleasant_a sound_n and_o satisfy_v all_o their_o sense_n with_o carnal_a pleasure_n can_v be_v true_a we_o can_v also_o specify_v the_o same_o by_o infinite_a example_n and_o by_o particular_n show_v that_o papist_n run_v the_o broad_a way_n but_o that_o we_o reserve_v it_o to_o the_o next_o chapter_n chap._n xxx_o that_o popish_a religion_n bring_v forth_o such_o bitter_a fruit_n that_o the_o professor_n thereof_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o boast_v of_o their_o work_n good_a tree_n be_v know_v by_o their_o fruit_n let_v we_o then_o see_v what_o fruit_n have_v come_v of_o popery_n that_o we_o may_v know_v whether_o the_o tree_n be_v good_a or_o no_o from_o whence_o they_o have_v issue_v bristol_n in_o his_o 39_o motive_n imagine_v that_o we_o have_v nothing_o to_o say_v against_o his_o consort_n and_o therefore_o brag_v much_o of_o work_n and_o despise_v his_o adversary_n as_o run_v the_o broade-way_n to_o destruction_n but_o when_o his_o consort_n shall_v see_v our_o discourse_n concern_v the_o fruit_n &_o effect_n of_o popery_n and_o their_o strange_a &_o enormous_a wicked_a life_n they_o will_v wish_v that_o for_o this_o matter_n we_o have_v never_o be_v call_v in_o question_n first_o then_o we_o say_v that_o the_o papist_n err_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o work_n and_o next_o that_o their_o life_n be_v so_o disorderly_a as_o if_o they_o do_v only_o study_v to_o excel_v in_o all_o wickedness_n leudenesse_n and_o villainy_n christian_n believe_v that_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v a_o perfect_a rule_n of_o good_a life_n but_o they_o hold_v that_o not_o only_a god_n law_n but_o all_o scripture_n be_v imperfect_a and_o insufficient_a without_o tradition_n christian_n believe_v that_o the_o perfection_n of_o christian_a life_n consist_v in_o the_o gospel_n but_o these_o teach_v that_o the_o rule_n of_o benet_n francis_n dominicke_n and_o other_o monk_n and_o friar_n do_v direct_v we_o to_o a_o further_a perfection_n then_o be_v command_v in_o the_o gospel_n they_o do_v as_o well_o believe_v that_o the_o law_n of_o the_o pope_n do_v bind_v our_o conscience_n as_o god_n law_n and_o think_v that_o the_o work_v do_v according_a to_o the_o pope_n law_n do_v as_o well_o please_v god_n as_o the_o work_v command_v in_o god_n law_n they_o make_v more_o conscience_n to_o abstain_v from_o flesh_n on_o friday_n then_o to_o murder_v christian_n as_o their_o curiosity_n in_o keep_v that_o form_n of_o fast_o and_o their_o cruelty_n in_o murder_v and_o massacre_a christian_n do_v declare_v the_o masspriest_n give_v absolution_n to_o most_o heinous_a sinner_n and_o enjoin_v they_o penance_n afterward_o the_o pope_n grant_v indulgence_n to_o most_o horrible_a offender_n they_o believe_v not_o that_o concupiscence_n be_v sin_n or_o that_o it_o be_v better_a for_o votary_n to_o marry_v then_o to_o burn_v or_o that_o venial_a sin_n deserve_v the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n or_o eternal_a death_n they_o teach_v that_o every_o christian_n be_v to_o satisfy_v for_o the_o temporal_a pain_n due_a to_o sin_n and_o that_o either_o in_o this_o life_n or_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v in_o purgatory_n they_o believe_v that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v justify_v by_o extreme_a unction_n and_o other_o popish_a sacrament_n and_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n and_o not_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n jesus_n they_o suppose_v that_o every_o man_n be_v able_a to_o perform_v the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n perfect_o of_o which_o it_o follow_v that_o as_o the_o pelagian_o teach_v a_o man_n may_v live_v without_o sin_n final_o by_o their_o work_n they_o hope_v to_o merit_v eternal_a life_n which_o be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n rom._n 6._o who_o teach_v we_o that_o eternal_a life_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n if_o then_o the_o papist_n err_v so_o gross_o both_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o work_n and_o also_o in_o the_o rule_n of_o our_o work_n it_o be_v not_o like_a that_o their_o work_n be_v excellent_a nay_o we_o find_v by_o practice_n that_o their_o work_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n impious_a and_o displease_v unto_o god_n as_o for_o example_n the_o adoration_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o sacrament_n their_o blasphemous_a prayer_n to_o the_o virgin_n mary_n to_o angel_n and_o saint_n their_o sacrilegious_a take_n of_o the_o cup_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n from_o god_n people_n their_o worship_n do_v to_o antichrist_n their_o perjury_n and_o rebellion_n against_o prince_n their_o murder_a god_n saint_n their_o maintain_n of_o public_a stew_n and_o bank_n of_o usury_n and_o such_o like_a the_o rest_n can_v much_o please_v god_n or_o man_n as_o for_o example_n the_o beg_n of_o vagabond_n friar_n the_o forswear_n of_o marriage_n the_o eat_n of_o muscle_n cockle_n and_o red_a herring_n in_o lent_n the_o take_n of_o ash_n on_o ash-wednesday_n the_o ring_n and_o sing_v for_o dead_a man_n the_o shave_n of_o priest_n crown_n the_o grease_n of_o sick_a man_n of_o altar_n bell_n and_o such_o like_a toy_n and_o ceremony_n
hand_n on_o she_o to_o arrest_v she_o and_o to_o concur_v to_o her_o punishment_n and_o to_o this_o end_n tend_v the_o most_o seditious_a and_o wicked_a libel_n set_v out_o by_o allen_n yet_o not_o without_o the_o help_n of_o parson_n and_o direct_v to_o the_o nobility_n and_o people_n of_o england_n and_o ireland_n when_o force_n prevail_v not_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o their_o adherent_n by_o treachery_n seek_v to_o murder_v she_o william_n parry_n anno_fw-la 1584._o resolve_v to_o murder_v that_o innocent_a queen_n and_o his_o purpose_n do_v so_o well_o please_v pope_n gregory_n the_o 13._o that_o cardinal_n como_n in_o the_o pope_n name_n promise_v he_o pardon_v of_o all_o his_o sin_n and_o a_o great_a reward_n beside_o for_o his_o endeavour_n monsignor_fw-it say_v he_o his_o holiness_n have_v see_v your_o letter_n with_o the_o credential_a note_n include_v and_o can_v but_o commend_v the_o good_a disposition_n which_o as_o you_o write_v you_o hold_v for_o the_o service_n and_o benefit_n of_o the_o public_a weal_n wherein_o he_o exhort_v you_o to_o continue_v until_o you_o have_v bring_v it_o to_o effect_v and_o that_o you_o may_v be_v holpen_v by_o that_o good_a spirit_n that_o have_v move_v you_o he_o grant_v you_o his_o blessing_n and_o plenary_a indulgence_n and_o plenary_a remission_n of_o all_o your_o sin_n assure_v you_o beside_o the_o merit_n which_o you_o shall_v have_v in_o heaven_n that_o his_o holiness_n will_v make_v himself_o your_o debtor_n to_o acknowledge_v your_o desert_n in_o the_o best_a sort_n he_o can_v thus_o the_o pope_n promise_v heaven_n to_o a_o wicked_a murderer_n and_o with_o he_o concur_v one_o benedict_n palmio_n a_o jebusite_n of_o venice_n and_o other_o jebusite_n and_o masspriest_n in_o france_n all_o set_v this_o assasssins_n &_o cutthroat_n on_o to_o murder_v a_o innocent_a queen_n parson_n that_o ringleader_n of_o traitor_n when_o a_o english_a gentle_a man_n go_v about_o to_o discover_v this_o treason_n by_o all_o mean_v disturn_v and_o distwade_v he_o further_a with_o his_o desire_n this_o most_o wicked_a resolution_n of_o parry_n as_o be_v cuident_a by_o his_o letter_n date_v the_o 18._o of_o october_n anno_fw-la 1598._o which_o be_v yet_o to_o be_v show_v that_o which_o parry_n intend_v diverse_a other_o traitor_n also_o promise_v to_o perform_v as_o savage_a enduce_v thereto_o by_o the_o persuasion_n of_o d._n gifford_n and_o other_o priest_n at_o paris_n ballard_n who_o be_v set_v on_o by_o allen_n somerfield_n who_o be_v encourage_v in_o the_o enterprise_n by_o arden_n and_o a_o romish_a maste-priest_n patrick_n collen_n york_n and_o williams_n who_o be_v enduce_v thereto_o by_o sir_n william_n stanley_n hugh_n owen_n holt_n sherwood_n gifford_n worthington_n and_o other_o to_o commit_v this_o villainous_a fact_n in_o the_o end_n lopez_n the_o queen_n physician_n undertake_v to_o empoison_v the_o queen_n upon_o hope_n of_o a_o great_a sum_n of_o money_n and_o one_o squire_n promise_v walpoole_n to_o practice_v the_o same_o treason_n damn_v himself_o if_o he_o do_v not_o execute_v that_o treacherous_a act_n and_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n upon_o it_o such_o zeal_n have_v these_o wicked_a jebusite_n to_o do_v mischief_n neither_o do_v they_o now_o desist_v from_o these_o wicked_a attempt_n as_o their_o treacherous_a plot_n against_o king_n james_n declare_v of_o late_a time_n henry_n the_o 3._o of_o france_n be_v most_o shameful_o murder_v by_o a_o dominican_n friar_n call_v james_n clement_n and_o the_o fact_n be_v high_o praise_v by_o the_o pope_n the_o like_a fact_n do_v peter_n barrier_n attempt_n against_o henry_n the_o four_o animate_v therein_o by_o diverse_a jebusite_n &_o masspriest_n as_o appear_v by_o his_o confession_n set_v down_o in_o record_n john_n chastell_n strike_v the_o same_o king_n with_o a_o knife_n think_v to_o murder_v he_o and_o this_o he_o learn_v as_o he_o confess_v in_o his_o examination_n of_o the_o jebusite_n the_o late_a prince_n of_o orange_n be_v first_o wound_v by_o john_n jauregui_n and_o afterward_o murder_v by_o balthasar_n gerard._n both_o which_o be_v persuade_v by_o masspriest_n and_o friar_n that_o such_o fact_n be_v meritorious_a final_o diverse_a have_v be_v hire_v and_o send_v by_o the_o pope_n agent_n to_o murder_v prince_n maurice_n as_o namely_o michael_n reinichon_n peter_n du_fw-fr four_o and_o peter_n pan_n and_o this_o be_v evident_o declare_v by_o their_o confession_n by_o diverse_a presumption_n and_o by_o their_o execution_n for_o this_o cause_n if_o then_o such_o reward_n be_v promise_v to_o such_o as_o attempt_v to_o empoison_v and_o murder_v prince_n let_v all_o christian_a prince_n beware_v how_o they_o admit_v such_o near_o their_o person_n as_o beleene_n this_o wicked_a doctrine_n and_o let_v they_o never_o forget_v the_o villainous_a treason_n of_o the_o english-miners_a and_o gun-pouder-man_n if_o papist_n think_v it_o meritorious_a to_o kill_v prince_n excommunicate_a by_o the_o pope_n and_o be_v therein_o animate_v by_o he_o and_o his_o agent_n then_o can_v godly_a prince_n have_v no_o assurance_n of_o their_o life_n before_o they_o root_v out_o all_o the_o professor_n of_o this_o king-killing_a and_o bloody_a religion_n and_o this_o appear_v evident_o by_o the_o treason_n contrive_v the_o five_o of_o november_n last_o chap._n thirty-nine_o that_o popery_n lay_v grievous_a burden_n on_o man_n conscience_n our_o saviour_n christ_n matth._n 23._o denounce_v a_o woe_n to_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n for_o that_o they_o shut_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n before_o man_n and_o neither_o enter_v themselves_o nor_o suffer_v other_o to_o enter_v therein_o he_o tax_v they_o also_o for_o that_o they_o bind_v heavy_a and_o importable_a burden_n on_o man_n shoulder_n and_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o once_o touch_v they_o with_o one_o of_o their_o singer_n but_o better_a may_v the_o same_o woe_n be_v denounce_v against_o the_o pharisaical_a friar_n monk_n and_o masspriest_n which_o keep_v the_o people_n of_o god_n from_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n word_n and_o nouzel_v they_o up_o in_o ignorance_n as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v do_v fast_o shut_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n against_o they_o and_o while_o they_o seek_v to_o maintain_v their_o pompous_a state_n and_o refuse_v to_o hear_v all_o speech_n of_o reformation_n neither_o enter_v themselves_o nor_o suffer_v other_o to_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n furthermore_o they_o do_v not_o only_o tie_v their_o follower_n to_o observe_v unwritten_a tradition_n as_o do_v the_o hypocritical_a scribe_n and_o pharisee_n but_o also_o lay_v upon_o they_o diverse_a other_o most_o heavy_a and_o grievous_a burden_n first_o they_o press_v man_n with_o diverse_a heavy_a statue_n and_o law_n for_o example_n they_o bind_v man_n to_o confess_v to_o their_o parochial_a priest_n once_o every_o year_n they_o require_v that_o confession_n be_v simple_a humble_a pure_a faithful_a frequent_a naked_a discreet_a willing_a bashful_a full_a and_o secret_a etc._n etc._n according_a to_o these_o verse_n sit_fw-la simplex_fw-la humilis_fw-la confessio_fw-la pura_fw-la fidelis_fw-la atque_fw-la frequens_fw-la nuda_fw-la &_o discreta_fw-la libens_fw-la verecunda_fw-la integra_fw-la secreta_fw-la &_o lachrymabilis_fw-la accelerata_fw-la fortis_fw-la &_o accusans_fw-la &_o sit_fw-la parêre_fw-la parata_fw-la and_o unless_o all_o mortal_a sin_n be_v confess_v they_o say_v it_o avail_v nothing_o but_o who_o can_v either_o tell_v all_o his_o sin_n or_o observe_v all_o these_o condition_n they_o also_o bind_v man_n to_o keep_v certain_a holiday_n and_o set_a feast_n and_o fast_n and_o that_o with_o certain_a condition_n further_o they_o teach_v that_o all_o christian_n be_v to_o observe_v the_o statute_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o decretales_fw-la of_o pope_n and_o act_n of_o their_o pretend_a counsel_n second_o every_o transgression_n of_o the_o statute_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n and_o of_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la they_o punish_v with_o grievous_a penalty_n to_o eat_v flesh_n on_o friday_n to_o eat_v egg_n in_o lent_n to_o read_v holy_a scripture_n in_o vulgar_a tongue_n without_o recantation_n be_v capital_a three_o they_o hold_v that_o every_o law_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n do_v bind_v in_o conscience_n nay_o if_o subject_n rebel_v not_o against_o their_o prince_n and_o lay_v hand_n upon_o they_o they_o teach_v that_o they_o sin_n mortal_o if_o then_o all_o transgression_n of_o the_o pope_n law_n be_v sin_n then_o be_v papist_n tie_v with_o infinite_a chain_n of_o sin_n they_o lose_v all_o these_o law_n i_o confess_v light_o but_o always_o this_o scruple_n will_v remain_v whether_o they_o have_v right_o confess_v and_o have_v full_o satisfy_v and_o be_v just_o absolve_v four_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n even_o to_o papist_n have_v always_o seem_v intolerable_a peter_n de_fw-fr aliaco_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr reformat_fw-la eccles_n complain_v of_o it_o and_z show_v how_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o church_n
all_o the_o decretal_n of_o pope_n before_o silvester_n time_n be_v counterfeit_a and_o say_v that_o he_o have_v prove_v it_o multas_fw-la supra_fw-la in_o praefatione_fw-la rationes_fw-la adduxi_fw-la say_v he_o quibus_fw-la omnium_fw-la pontificum_fw-la qui_fw-la siluestrum_fw-la praecesserunt_fw-la decretales_fw-la falsas_fw-la esse_fw-la manifestè_fw-la ostendi_fw-la but_o in_o plantin_n edition_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n they_o have_v take_v away_o this_o preface_n with_o notorious_a impudence_n cover_v their_o gross_a falsity_n thus_o we_o see_v how_o they_o have_v forge_v whole_a book_n treatise_n epistle_n law_n &_o other_o instrument_n if_o then_o they_o have_v deal_v so_o false_o in_o whole_a instrument_n &_o book_n we_o may_v not_o think_v that_o they_o be_v more_o scrupulous_a in_o add_v or_o take_v away_o word_n or_o sentence_n and_o falsify_v part_n c._n in_o canonicis_fw-la do_v 19_o in_o the_o rubric_n they_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la be_v number_v among_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o pretend_v augustine_n authority_n but_o he_o say_v no_o such_o thing_n lib._n 2._o the_o doctr_n christ_n c._n 8._o they_o add_v these_o word_n &_o ab_fw-la ea_fw-la alij_fw-la unto_o the_o word_n of_o s._n augustine_n dist_n 1._o de_fw-fr consecrat_fw-mi c._n jacobus_n they_o say_v that_o james_n and_o basil_n do_v deliver_v to_o we_o missae_fw-la celebrationem_fw-la that_o be_v the_o form_n of_o celebrate_v mass_n and_o cite_v synodum_fw-la sextam_fw-la c._n 32._o whereas_o it_o be_v only_o say_v that_o they_o teach_v how_o in_o the_o holy_a celebration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n the_o cup_n be_v fill_v with_o wine_n and_o water_n c._n species_n do_v 2._o the_o consecrat_fw-mi these_o word_n species_n &_o similitudo_fw-la illarum_fw-la rerum_fw-la vocabula_fw-la sunt_fw-la with_o the_o rest_n follow_v be_v pretend_v to_o be_v take_v ex_fw-la paschali_fw-la gregorij_fw-la papae_fw-la but_o most_o false_o c._n utrum_fw-la de_fw-mi consecrat_fw-mi do_v 32._o these_o word_n utrum_fw-la sub_fw-la figura_fw-la a_o sub_fw-la veritate_fw-la hoc_fw-la mysticum_fw-la calicis_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la fiat_fw-la with_o all_o the_o chapter_n follow_v be_v allege_v as_o speak_v by_o s._n augustine_n yet_o neither_o be_v the_o place_n sign_v nor_o can_v those_o word_n be_v find_v in_o any_o place_n of_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o chapter_n in_o christo_n do_v 2._o the_o consecrat_fw-mi take_v as_o be_v pretend_v out_o of_o hilary_n lib._n 8._o de_fw-la trinit_fw-la these_o word_n corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la quod_fw-la sumitur_fw-la de_fw-la altari_fw-la be_v foist_v into_o the_o text_n into_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n of_o the_o cup_n they_o have_v thrust_v in_o these_o word_n &_o eterni_fw-la &_o mysterium_fw-la fidei_fw-la commit_v falsehood_n in_o the_o very_a canon_n of_o the_o mass_n durand_n rat._n divin_v lib._n 4._o c._n 4._o allege_v pope_n cyprian_n for_o proof_n of_o holy_a water_n cyprianus_n papa_n ait_fw-fr quod_fw-la ideo_fw-la aqua_fw-la benedicta_fw-la homines_fw-la asperguntur_fw-la quia_fw-la valet_fw-la ad_fw-la sanctisicationem_fw-la say_v durand_n but_o neither_o can_v he_o find_v a_o pope_n of_o that_o name_n nor_o any_o such_o word_n in_o the_o writing_n of_o cyprian_a pius_fw-la quintus_fw-la in_o his_o missal_n out_o of_o the_o 2._o book_n of_o machab_n c._n 12.46_o write_v peccatis_fw-la mortuorum_fw-la for_o peccato_fw-la and_o for_o 2._o m._n write_v 12._o m._n turrecremat_n a_o lib._n 2._o c._n 12._o summae_fw-la de_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la make_v chrysostome_n to_o call_v peter_n the_o provost_n and_o head_n of_o his_o brethren_n and_o to_o affirm_v that_o they_o ought_v to_o preach_v peter_n matter_n never_o think_v of_o by_o chrysostome_n pope_n syricius_n allege_v these_o word_n s._n cerdote_n mei_fw-la semel_fw-la nubant_fw-la out_o of_o moses_n but_o no_o where_n in_o all_o the_o five_o book_n of_o moses_n be_v any_o such_o word_n to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o 3._o action_n of_o the_o 2._o synod_n of_o nice_a basil_n be_v make_v to_o say_v that_o the_o honour_n give_v to_o the_o image_n redound_v to_o the_o original_n but_o such_o word_n be_v not_o where_o find_v bellarmine_n forgery_n be_v infinite_a in_o his_o 2._o book_n de_fw-fr pont._n rom._n c._n 31._o he_o falsifi_v the_o word_n of_o hierom_n in_o a_o epistle_n to_o damasus_n write_v hanc_fw-la petram_fw-la for_o illam_fw-la petram_fw-la as_o if_o hierome_n call_v damasus_n the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n where_o he_o express_o mean_v christ_n the_o rock_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr reliquijs_fw-la cap._n 3._o he_o allege_v certain_a obscure_a book_n and_o counterfeit_a testimony_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o relic_n in_o the_o same_o place_n allege_v eusebius_n his_o history_n lib._n 4._o c._n 14._o he_o make_v he_o say_v that_o s._n james_n his_o chain_n be_v have_v in_o great_a veneration_n whereas_o he_o say_v no_o such_o thing_n but_o rather_o show_v in_o what_o honourable_a account_n holy_a man_n be_v hold_v in_o ancient_a time_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr sanct_n beat_v c._n 13._o cite_v eusebius_n de_fw-fr praeparat_fw-la evangel_n lib._n 13._o he_o make_v he_o to_o use_v these_o word_n nos_fw-la quotidie_fw-la id_fw-la factitamus_fw-la nam_fw-la verae_fw-la pietatis_fw-la milites_fw-la ut_fw-la dei_fw-la amicissimos_fw-la honoramus_fw-la whereas_o no_o such_o word_n be_v to_o be_v find_v he_o say_v only_o that_o christian_n honour_n the_o bless_a soul_n of_o such_o as_o contend_v for_o true_a piety_n lib._n 2._o the_o pont_n rom._n c._n 31._o he_o falsifi_v the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n make_v the_o same_o to_o say_v that_o leo_n do_v preside_v and_o govern_v the_o church_n as_o the_o head_n the_o member_n for_o neither_o be_v this_o epistle_n that_o be_v cite_v the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n nor_o be_v it_o say_v there_o that_o leo_n be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n as_o bellarmine_n will_v have_v it_o but_o that_o he_o rule_v his_o clerk_n as_o the_o head_n the_o member_n likewise_o in_o the_o same_o book_n and_o chapter_n rehearse_v the_o title_n give_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n he_o say_v that_o eusebius_n in_o his_o chronicle_n anno_fw-la d._n 44._o do_v give_v they_o the_o title_n of_o pontifex_fw-la christianorum_fw-la but_o eusebius_n do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o once_o mention_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o that_o place_n lib._n de_fw-fr monachis_fw-la c._n 31._o he_o change_v chrysostom_n word_n in_o c._n 19_o matth._n make_v he_o to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o abstain_v from_o marriage_n where_o he_o say_v only_o that_o it_o be_v possible_a and_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr monachis_fw-la c._n 27._o allege_v a_o place_n out_o of_o the_o 15._o homily_n of_o chrysostome_n upon_o the_o first_o to_o timothy_n he_o add_v these_o word_n id_fw-la est_fw-la christo_fw-la nubit_fw-la it_o be_v infinite_a to_o rehearse_v all_o the_o place_n which_o he_o have_v falsify_v and_o not_o necessary_a consider_v that_o i_o have_v set_v down_o so_o many_o in_o diverse_a treatise_n write_v against_o he_o already_o the_o false_a allegation_n of_o harding_n be_v particular_o note_v by_o bishop_n jewel_n of_o reverend_a memory_n stapleton_n be_v convince_v of_o falsehood_n both_o by_o d._n fulke_n and_o d._n whitaker_n of_o parson_n and_o kellisons_n forgery_n and_o false_a allegation_n i_o have_v speak_v myself_o somewhat_o large_o and_o shall_v percase_o have_v occasion_n to_o speak_v of_o they_o further_o hereafter_o wherefore_o if_o it_o be_v the_o property_n of_o heretic_n and_o not_o of_o catholic_n to_o mangle_v the_o sentence_n of_o father_n then_o papist_n herein_o do_v declare_v themselves_o to_o be_v heretic_n and_o not_o catholic_n non_fw-la convenit_fw-la orthodoxis_fw-la say_v the_o father_n of_o the_o 8._o council_n act_n 8._o circumtruncatas_fw-la patrum_fw-la voces_fw-la deflorare_fw-la hareticorum_fw-la hoc_fw-la potius_fw-la proprium_fw-la est_fw-la herein_o therefore_o they_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o clear_v themselves_o of_o a_o special_a note_n of_o heretic_n chap._n xliii_o that_o popery_n can_v be_v well_o uphold_v without_o calumniation_n and_o lie_n as_o justice_n be_v accompany_v with_o truth_n so_o wicked_a cause_n can_v be_v uphold_v without_o lie_n and_o calumniation_n a_o matter_n clear_o verify_v by_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o papist_n who_o false_a and_o erromous_a doctrine_n be_v build_v upon_o lie_n and_o calumniation_n as_o upon_o two_o pillar_n by_o their_o calumniation_n they_o seek_v to_o bring_v good_a man_n into_o obloquy_n and_o hatred_n by_o lie_v they_o will_v willing_o grace_v their_o own_o false_a religion_n and_o bring_v a_o scandal_n upon_o the_o truth_n to_o make_v proof_n hereof_o we_o need_v not_o to_o go_v far_o then_o to_o their_o wicked_a libel_n late_o publish_v against_o luther_n caluin_n zuinglius_fw-la oecolampadius_n beza_n and_o all_o that_o have_v be_v actor_n in_o the_o defence_n of_o truth_n to_o the_o lie_a tradition_n and_o legend_n of_o the_o synagogue_n of_o rome_n to_o the_o feign_a miracle_n of_o suppose_a romish_a
final_o bellarmine_n and_o coster_n say_v that_o calum_fw-la be_v eat_v up_o with_o lice_n and_o die_v blaspheme_v and_o call_v upon_o the_o devil_n a_o devilish_a slander_n refute_v by_o galasius_n beza_n and_o the_o public_a testimony_n of_o the_o city_n of_o geneva_n a_o little_a before_o his_o death_n say_v they_o he_o call_v his_o fellow_n minister_n unto_o he_o exhort_v they_o with_o many_o word_n full_a of_o piety_n and_o affection_n and_o depart_v this_o life_n rather_o like_a to_o one_o fall_v a_o sleep_v then_o die_v beza_n be_v charge_v for_o affirm_v that_o christ_n have_v two_o hypostasis_n or_o personal_a subsistence_n but_o his_o adversary_n deal_n with_o he_o calumnious_o for_o he_o confess_v and_o teach_v that_o christ_n be_v one_o person_n albeit_o the_o same_o christ_n be_v very_a god_n and_o very_a man_n the_o two_o nature_n be_v unite_v in_o one_o person_n and_o the_o soul_n and_o the_o body_n be_v unite_v in_o one_o man_n fevardentius_n in_o jacob_n 3._o and_o stapleton_n in_o prompt_a hebdom_n 3._o quadrage_n and_o other_o rail_v at_o beza_n for_o his_o verse_n which_o he_o make_v be_v a_o young_a man_n but_o beza_n do_v first_o condemn_v those_o verse_n himself_o as_o be_v make_v while_o he_o be_v a_o impure_a papist_n and_o yet_o compare_v they_o with_o the_o italian_a rhyme_n that_o be_v every_o where_o extant_a and_o with_o the_o verse_n of_o casa_n and_o other_o italian_n they_o may_v seem_v modest_a and_o chaste_a in_o respect_n final_o of_o late_a time_n the_o shameless_a jebusite_n of_o france_n publish_v a_o pamphlet_n of_o bezaes_n recantation_n and_o reconciliation_n to_o the_o pope_n fraught_v with_o diverse_a lie_n but_o beza_n himself_o refuce_v their_o impudent_a lie_n and_o now_o the_o papist_n themselves_o self_n will_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o this_o be_v a_o lie_v and_o impudent_a pamphlet_n this_o be_v also_o the_o practice_n of_o papist_n from_o time_n to_o time_n to_o slander_v and_o to_o bely_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n in_o the_o 8._o session_n of_o the_o conventicle_n of_o constance_n the_o masseprieste_n charge_v wicklesse_a that_o he_o teach_v that_o god_n must_v obey_v the_o devil_n a_o matter_n not_o where_o sound_a either_o in_o term_n or_o in_o sense_n in_o his_o writing_n they_o say_v also_o how_o he_o teach_v that_o prince_n be_v in_o mortal_a sin_n be_v not_o to_o be_v obey_v his_o drift_n be_v only_o to_o show_v that_o prelate_n live_n loose_o be_v unworthy_a of_o their_o place_n albeit_o he_o do_v not_o detract_v from_o the_o efficacy_n of_o sacrament_n minister_v by_o they_o the_o right_a of_o king_n against_o the_o usurpation_n of_o the_o clergy_n he_o stout_o maintain_v in_o the_o same_o wicked_a assembly_n john_n husse_n be_v accuse_v that_o he_o teach_v that_o there_o be_v a_o four_o person_n beside_o the_o trinity_n and_o that_o he_o call_v gregory_n a_o rymer_n neither_o do_v it_o avail_v he_o that_o he_o deny_v these_o accusation_n most_o constant_o for_o his_o accuser_n be_v hear_v and_o his_o defence_n little_o regard_v he_o be_v also_o most_o false_o charge_v with_o drive_v the_o german_n out_o of_o the_o university_n of_o prague_n whereas_o it_o be_v prove_v that_o the_o german_n do_v voluntary_o depart_v thence_o for_o that_o they_o pretend_v their_o ancient_a privilege_n to_o be_v infringe_v against_o bucer_n they_o give_v out_o that_o die_v he_o turn_v jew_n and_o blaspheme_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n a_o matter_n devise_v without_o proof_n or_o probability_n and_o convince_v by_o all_o that_o be_v present_a with_o he_o at_o his_o death_n grineus_n be_v present_a at_o the_o end_n of_o oecolampadius_n and_o testify_v that_o he_o die_v most_o quiet_o godly_a and_o christianlie_a and_o with_o he_o concur_v wolfangus_n capito_n yet_o be_v not_o the_o papist_n ashamed_a to_o give_v forth_o that_o the_o devil_n st_o angle_a he_o of_o who_o i_o will_v but_o ask_v only_o one_o question_n to_o wit_n who_o these_o witness_n be_v that_o see_v the_o devil_n commit_v this_o act_n our_o english_a papist_n seek_a matter_n to_o object_n against_o bishop_n jewel_n of_o reverend_a memory_n but_o find_v none_o only_o they_o tell_v we_o diverse_a false_a allegation_n be_v find_v in_o his_o book_n but_o all_o their_o accusation_n be_v answer_v and_o rest_v so_o without_o reply_n although_o the_o shameless_a adversary_n desist_v not_o to_o allege_v matter_n diverse_a time_n answer_v they_o say_v further_o that_o d._n stephens_n and_o william_n raynolds_n be_v convert_v to_o popery_n by_o read_v his_o book_n but_o the_o first_o be_v a_o simple_a fellow_n and_o draw_v away_o with_o hope_n the_o second_o run_v away_o force_v by_o despair_n against_o bishop_n granmer_n they_o have_v denise_v diverse_a slanderous_a tale_n as_o if_o he_o be_v unlearned_a inconstant_a and_o carry_v about_o his_o wise_n in_o a_o trunk_n but_o for_o the_o first_o his_o learned_a writing_n and_o dispute_n will_v testify_v that_o it_o be_v untruth_n furthermore_o very_o unlike_o it_o be_v that_o he_o shall_v have_v be_v employ_v in_o so_o great_a affair_n if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v singular_o learn_v his_o constancy_n appear_v in_o his_o continual_a travail_n against_o the_o pope_n authority_n and_o popish_a error_n the_o last_o be_v a_o improbable_a tale_n devise_v by_o some_o standrous_a popish_a parasite_n and_o well_o deserve_v they_o to_o be_v case_v in_o cloke-bagge_n that_o do_v believe_v it_o for_o he_o have_v send_v his_o wife_n away_o before_o into_o germany_n and_o have_v he_o not_o yet_o this_o devise_n be_v improbable_a if_o not_o impossible_a sander_n rishton_n stapleton_n parson_n and_o their_o pewfellow_n have_v publish_v diverse_a slander_n against_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o queen_n elizabeth_n of_o bless_a memory_n and_o diverse_a of_o their_o loyal_a subject_n but_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v marvel_v if_o fugitive_n and_o traitor_n rail_v against_o their_o prince_n and_o all_o that_o favour_v the_o state_n the_o unwritten_a tradition_n of_o the_o synagogue_n of_o rome_n be_v nothing_o but_o lie_v devise_v and_o false_o father_v upon_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n bellarmine_n de_fw-fr verb._n dei_fw-la lib._n 4._o c._n 3._o esteem_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n to_o be_v a_o tradition_n yet_o be_v the_o same_o denise_v since_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o be_v not_o find_v in_o that_o form_n of_o mass_n which_o be_v in_o the_o old_a romish_a ordinall_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n certes_o christian_n neither_o pray_v for_o pope_n nor_o for_o emperor_n nor_o do_v cosmas_n and_o damianus_n and_o other_o saint_n mention_v in_o the_o canon_n live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o their_o next_o successor_n innocent_n the_o three_o c._n cum_fw-la marthae_fw-la de_fw-fr celebratione_fw-la missar_n determine_v that_o these_o word_n of_o the_o canon_n tum_fw-la levauit_fw-la oculos_fw-la in_o caelum_fw-la ad_fw-la patrem_fw-la and_o mysterium_fw-la sidei_fw-la and_o such_o like_v not_o mention_v in_o the_o gospel_n be_v recein_v from_o christ_n by_o tradition_n but_o of_o his_o assertion_n he_o allege_v no_o proof_n neither_o can_v he_o show_v reason_n why_o christ_n shall_v omit_v word_n now_o repute_v so_o necessary_a the_o worship_n of_o image_n in_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a be_v call_v a_o apostolic_a tradition_n yet_o never_o do_v we_o read_v that_o any_o apostle_n or_o apostolic_a man_n do_v teach_v it_o nay_o the_o law_n of_o god_n do_v express_o forbid_v the_o make_n of_o all_o image_n or_o similitude_n to_o the_o end_n they_o shall_v be_v worship_v some_o say_v that_o prayer_n and_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a be_v confirm_v by_o apostolic_a tradition_n yet_o our_o saviour_n show_v that_o we_o be_v to_o work_v while_o we_o have_v light_n and_o appoint_v the_o eucharist_n to_o be_v receive_v of_o the_o communicant_n and_o not_o to_o be_v offer_v for_o quick_a and_o dead_a the_o kiss_n of_o the_o altar_n and_o blessing_n of_o incense_n masspriest_n do_v believe_v to_o be_v command_v by_o tradition_n from_o the_o same_o founteine_v do_v issue_n the_o wash_n of_o hand_n turn_n of_o the_o priest_n the_o swing_a of_o the_o chalice_n here_o and_o there_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o host_n the_o pompous_a perambulation_n of_o the_o host_n in_o the_o pix_n and_o other_o ceremony_n of_o the_o mass_n but_o these_o tradition_n be_v found_v upon_o lie_n and_o fable_n and_o be_v partly_o jewish_a partly_o heathenish_a and_o all_o of_o they_o mere_a humane_a invention_n and_o devise_n nay_o some_o of_o they_o be_v fond_a and_o ridiculous_a as_o the_o kiss_n of_o stone_n and_o stock_n some_o repugnant_a to_o scripture_n as_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n with_o that_o honour_n that_o be_v due_a to_o god_n in_o the_o missal_n salt_n be_v exorcise_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o such_o as_o believe_v and_o water_n be_v hallow_v for_o the_o drive_v
god_n worship_n and_o persecute_v their_o enemy_n like_o most_o cruel_a tyrant_n that_o afterward_o they_o may_v with_o more_o security_n satisfy_v their_o lust_n when_o there_o be_v none_o to_o control_v they_o joannes_n marius_n de_fw-fr schism_n part_n 3._o c._n 5._o testify_v that_o all_o the_o evil_n of_o christendom_n have_v proceed_v from_o the_o malice_n ambition_n and_o avarice_n of_o wicked_a pope_n a_o malitia_fw-la ambitione_n &_o avaritia_fw-la sceleratorum_fw-la paparum_fw-la omne_fw-la mala_fw-la in_o mundo_fw-la proveniunt_fw-la robert_n grosted_n as_o matthew_n paris_n testify_v in_o henrico_n 3_o do_v bitter_o inveigh_v against_o the_o covetousness_n usury_n simony_n rapine_n excess_n and_o luxuriousnesse_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n neither_o do_v budaeus_fw-la de_fw-la ass_n or_o valla_n contra_fw-la donationem_fw-la constantini_n say_v less_o against_o the_o pope_n than_o he_o next_o to_o the_o pope_n the_o cardinal_n masspriest_n monk_n and_o friar_n and_o of_o late_a year_n the_o dominican_n franciscan_n and_o jebusite_n be_v the_o chief_a advancer_n teacher_n and_o defender_n of_o romish_a heresy_n of_o which_o if_o we_o say_v little_a man_n may_v suppose_v there_o be_v no_o more_o to_o be_v say_v if_o we_o say_v what_o they_o deserve_v and_o be_v in_o authentical_a book_n report_v of_o they_o it_o will_v exceed_v the_o proportion_n of_o this_o short_a survey_v only_o thus_o much_o we_o say_v of_o many_o thing_n that_o may_v be_v say_v brigit_fw-la in_o her_o revelation_n testify_v that_o cardinal_n be_v excessive_a in_o pride_n covetousness_n &_o all_o delight_n of_o the_o flesh_n 4._o brig_n 49._o cardinal_n extenti_fw-la &_o effusi_fw-la sunt_fw-la ad_fw-la omnem_fw-la superbiam_fw-la cupiditatem_fw-la &_o delectamentum_fw-la carnis_fw-la pelaguis_fw-la lib._n 2._o the_o planct_v eccles_n art_n 16._o say_v they_o be_v increase_v in_o riches_n but_o much_o diminish_v in_o piety_n aucta_fw-la est_fw-la possessio_fw-la diminuta_fw-la religio_fw-la the_o same_o man_n lib._n 2._o the_o planct_v leccle_n art_n 20._o say_v the_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n have_v declare_v their_o sin_n like_o sodom_n peccatum_fw-la suum_fw-la sicut_fw-la sodoma_fw-la praedicaverunt_fw-la mantuan_a alphonsi_n lib._n 6._o say_v that_o the_o priest_n hate_v their_o flock_n and_o care_v not_o to_o feed_v they_o but_o to_o poll_v they_o and_o mock_v they_o pastor_n say_v he_o odere_fw-la pecus_fw-la nec_fw-la pascere_fw-la curant_fw-la sed_fw-la tondere_fw-la greges_fw-la pecorique_fw-la illudere_fw-la tonso_fw-la catherine_n of_o sienna_n c._n 125._o say_v that_o religious_a man_n pretend_v angel_n life_n but_o for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v worse_a than_o devil_n religiosi_fw-la collocati_fw-la sunt_fw-la in_o religione_fw-la velut_fw-la angeli_fw-la sed_fw-la quam_fw-la plurimi_fw-la sunt_fw-la daemonibus_fw-la deteriores_fw-la what_o the_o jebusite_n be_v i_o report_v i_o to_o the_o french_a carechisme_n of_o jesuite_n set_v out_o by_o a_o papist_n and_o a_o learned_a man_n and_o to_o the_o discourse_n of_o the_o secular_a priest_n against_o they_o they_o show_v they_o be_v covetous_a false_a proud_a cruel_a malicious_a and_o devil_n incarnate_a for_o the_o rest_n i_o refer_v they_o over_o to_o the_o 2._o book_n 2._o chap._n of_o my_o answer_n to_o rob._n parson_n his_o warn-word_n a_o man_n in_o who_o most_o of_o the_o capital_a vice_n of_o the_o jebusite_n may_v be_v specify_v the_o chief_a maintainer_n of_o popery_n in_o our_o time_n if_o we_o speak_v of_o lay_v man_n be_v charles_n the_o 9_o of_o france_n henry_n the_o 3._o his_o brother_n philip_n the_o 2._o of_o spain_n the_o duke_n of_o alva_n the_o duke_n of_o guise_n and_o his_o brethren_n the_o earl_n of_o westmoreland_n the_o head_n of_o the_o rebellion_n in_o the_o north._n but_o if_o we_o seek_v all_o history_n we_o shall_v hardly_o find_v worse_a man_n charles_n the_o 9_o be_v a_o notorious_a sweater_n a_o perfidious_a and_o licentious_a prince_n henry_n the_o 3._o be_v superstitious_a and_o altogether_o give_v to_o carnal_a delight_n what_o philip_n the_o 2._o be_v his_o wife_n and_o son_n and_o the_o innocent_n do_v to_o death_n by_o he_o for_o religion_n will_v speak_v one_o day_n the_o duke_n of_o guise_n and_o alita_n be_v cruel_a and_o bloody_a man_n perfidious_a and_o wicked_a atheist_n the_o first_o more_o give_v to_o pleasure_n the_o second_o to_o avarice_n charles_n of_o westmoreland_o be_v a_o rebel_n to_o his_o prince_n and_o a_o man_n consume_v with_o his_o own_o delight_n and_o pleasure_n be_v it_o not_o then_o a_o matter_n ridiculous_a that_o masspriest_n shall_v so_o excessive_o commend_v this_o religion_n that_o have_v such_o founder_n and_o favourer_n as_o these_o be_v and_o which_o as_o we_o see_v be_v invent_v and_o confirm_v by_o wicked_a man_n and_o uphold_v by_o fraud_n and_o force_n chap._n xlvii_o that_o popery_n in_o many_o point_n be_v more_o absurd_a and_o abominable_a than_o the_o doctrine_n of_o mahomet_n the_o impiety_n and_o abomination_n of_o turkish_a religion_n be_v so_o many_o that_o hardly_o can_v we_o recount_v they_o and_o so_o odious_a and_o horrible_a that_o no_o christian_n can_v take_v pleasure_n to_o hear_v they_o and_o yet_o if_o we_o please_v to_o look_v into_o the_o secret_a mystery_n of_o popery_n and_o to_o examine_v all_o the_o odious_a and_o abominable_a doctrine_n of_o the_o romish_a synagogue_n we_o may_v well_o make_v question_n whether_o of_o the_o two_o religion_n deserve_v more_o to_o be_v abhor_v and_o hate_v for_o first_o the_o turk_n do_v speak_v well_o of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o handle_v book_n of_o scripture_n with_o great_a reverence_n antony_n geoffrey_n in_o his_o 2._o book_n of_o turkish_a ceremony_n report_v how_o the_o turk_n account_n the_o gospel_n among_o holy_a scripture_n inter_fw-la sacras_fw-la literas_fw-la habent_fw-la nostra_fw-la evangelia_fw-la say_v he_o but_o the_o papist_n speak_v evil_a of_o scripture_n and_o call_v they_o sometime_o a_o dead_a and_o kill_a letter_n sometime_o a_o matter_n of_o strife_n sometime_o a_o nose_n of_o wax_n they_o do_v also_o handle_v they_o very_o rude_o and_o without_o respect_n last_o they_o will_v not_o have_v they_o to_o be_v authentical_a in_o respect_n of_o we_o without_o the_o pope_n consignation_n and_o testimony_n the_o turk_n never_o burn_v their_o koran_n or_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n upon_o pretence_n of_o false_a translation_n but_o the_o papist_n have_v often_o time_n burn_v holy_a scripture_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n of_o france_n england_n germany_n and_o other_o place_n postell_n in_o his_o history_n of_o turk_n show_v how_o they_o teach_v that_o perfection_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o gospel_n and_o gifford_n lib._n caluinoturcis_n 3._o c._n 9_o confess_v that_o they_o believe_v all_o religion_n to_o be_v therein_o contain_v but_o papist_n do_v rather_o hope_v to_o find_v perfection_n in_o the_o rule_n of_o monk_n and_o friar_n then_o in_o the_o gospel_n and_o therefore_o account_v rather_o the_o state_n of_o monk_n to_o be_v a_o state_n of_o perfection_n than_o the_o life_n of_o christian_n after_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o masspriest_n of_o trent_n do_v make_v tradition_n equal_a to_o scripture_n and_o common_o they_o deny_v scripture_n to_o be_v a_o perfect_a rule_n of_o life_n and_o doctrine_n the_o doctor_n of_o turkish_a religion_n be_v never_o so_o simple_a as_o to_o think_v the_o tradition_n of_o their_o church_n to_o be_v equal_a to_o the_o koran_n of_o mahomet_n but_o the_o masspriest_n of_o trent_n will_v have_v tradition_n not_o write_v and_o holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v receive_v with_o equal_a affection_n such_o as_o blaspheme_v christ_n be_v punish_v by_o the_o turk_n most_o severe_o but_o papist_n tear_v he_o in_o piece_n with_o their_o blasphemy_n and_o such_o be_v think_v to_o be_v most_o clear_a of_o heresy_n which_o swear_v most_o wicked_o and_o blasphemous_o auerroes_n of_o all_o religion_n account_v popery_n to_o be_v most_o absurd_a for_o that_o papist_n worship_v a_o piece_n of_o a_o masse-cake_n for_o their_o god_n and_o yet_o present_o devour_v he_o and_o swallow_v he_o down_o into_o their_o belly_n no_o turk_n ever_o allow_v the_o eat_n of_o man_n flesh_n or_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o a_o man_n to_o swallow_v down_o a_o whole_a and_o perfect_a man_n without_o hurt_n or_o diminution_n or_o bruise_v of_o his_o body_n but_o papist_n make_v their_o follower_n eater_n of_o man_n flesh_n and_o say_v that_o every_o one_o eat_v the_o sacrament_n do_v eat_v up_o christ_n body_n whole_a and_o entire_a and_o yet_o believe_v that_o they_o neither_o break_v his_o flesh_n nor_o digest_v it_o every_o mahometan_a albeit_o he_o believe_v not_o christ_n to_o be_v god_n yet_o will_v be_v ashamed_a to_o say_v that_o dog_n and_o hog_n and_o other_o brute_n beast_n may_v eat_v christ_n body_n but_o the_o papist_n albeit_o according_a to_o the_o christian_a faith_n they_o
matth._n paris_n in_o henrico_n 3_o do_v testify_v alexander_n the_o three_o send_v the_o soldan_n fridericke_n barbarossaes_n portrayt_o then_o serve_v against_o the_o saracen_n persuade_v he_o to_o kill_v he_o if_o he_o will_v settle_v his_o affair_n gregory_n the_o 9_o invade_v the_o emperor_n dominion_n in_o italy_n and_o draw_v fridericke_n the_o 2._o out_o of_o asia_n to_o defend_v his_o own_o possession_n at_o home_n when_o he_o be_v almost_o in_o possession_n of_o the_o victory_n abroad_o last_o it_o be_v public_o know_v that_o they_o have_v set_v french_a and_o spanish_a together_o about_o the_o quarrel_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n innocent_n the_o three_o by_o his_o excommunication_n of_o king_n john_n set_v both_o his_o subject_n and_o the_o french_a against_o he_o and_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o loss_n of_o normandy_n to_o the_o english_a julian_n the_o cardinal_n set_v the_o german_n against_o the_o bohemian_o paul_n the_o three_o be_v the_o principal_a motive_n of_o the_o war_n of_o charles_n the_o sift_n against_o the_o german_n and_o to_o shut_v up_o this_o discourse_n in_o few_o word_n not_o only_a nicholas_n machiavelli_n in_o his_o florentine_a history_n affirm_v but_o also_o all_o history_n testify_v that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n have_v be_v the_o principal_a cause_n of_o all_o the_o war_n and_o stir_n of_o europe_n that_o have_v be_v for_o this_o 4._o or_o 5._o hundred_o year_n last_o pass_v they_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o massacre_n of_o france_n of_o the_o trouble_n of_o the_o low-country_n of_o the_o late_a rebellion_n in_o england_n scotland_n and_o ireland_n of_o the_o contention_n betwixt_o french_a and_o spanish_a in_o italy_n of_o the_o persecution_n in_o germany_n and_o spain_n and_o other_o country_n four_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n by_o devise_v and_o confirm_v many_o order_n of_o monk_n and_o friar_n by_o admit_v such_o swarm_n of_o idle_a lozel_n into_o order_n and_o maintain_v they_o by_o chant_v of_o mass_n for_o soul_n force_v they_o to_o forswear_v marriage_n have_v not_o only_o cause_v many_o unnatural_a murder_n but_o also_o hinder_v the_o propagation_n and_o increase_n of_o man_n they_o have_v also_o withdraw_v man_n from_o defence_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n and_o place_v they_o in_o den_n of_o licentious_a idleness_n and_o lay_v the_o charge_n of_o the_o common_a defence_n upon_o few_o five_o exempt_n both_o the_o good_n and_o the_o person_n of_o religious_a man_n and_o clerk_n from_o common_a charge_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n they_o have_v weaken_v the_o state_n of_o prince_n and_o lay_v all_o the_o burden_n upon_o the_o weak_a part_n final_o by_o their_o idolatry_n they_o have_v displease_v god_n and_o by_o their_o perjury_n have_v make_v good_a the_o lewd_a cause_n of_o the_o turk_n therefore_o we_o be_v not_o to_o marvel_v if_o the_o christian_n have_v not_o prosper_v in_o their_o expedition_n into_o the_o holy_a land_n for_o what_o success_n can_v christian_n look_v for_o consider_v the_o notorious_a abuse_n commit_v in_o the_o army_n by_o worship_v idol_n blaspheme_v god_n holy_a name_n violate_v christ_n institution_n of_o the_o eucharist_n by_o celebration_n of_o profane_a mass_n can_v ladislaus_n king_n of_o poland_n and_o his_o army_n prevail_v against_o the_o turk_n have_v begin_v the_o war_n contrary_a to_o article_n of_o peace_n solemn_o swear_v but_o let_v we_o maintain_v the_o religion_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o of_o antichrist_n and_o let_v we_o abolish_v the_o idolatrous_a worship_n of_o image_n and_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o let_v we_o abandon_v the_o damn_a mass_n and_o serve_v god_n as_o he_o have_v appoint_v and_o final_o let_v we_o not_o violate_v our_o promise_n and_o oath_n nor_o abuse_v god_n holy_a name_n and_o then_o no_o doubt_n but_o we_o shall_v prosper_v in_o all_o our_o enterprise_n against_o the_o turk_n or_o other_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n for_o hitherto_o not_o the_o turk_n force_n but_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o sin_n idolatry_n blasphemy_n and_o other_o abuse_n of_o christian_n have_v make_v they_o fly_v before_o their_o enemy_n and_o overthrow_v their_o army_n chap._n l._n that_o the_o modern_a church_n of_o rome_n be_v much_o degenerate_v from_o the_o faith_n and_o manner_n of_o the_o ancient_a roman_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n when_o paul_n write_v unto_o it_o excel_v in_o all_o piety_n and_o virtue_n and_o be_v famous_a throughout_o the_o world_n but_o as_o all_o thing_n else_o so_o both_o faith_n and_o virtue_n through_o tract_n of_o time_n faint_v and_o in_o the_o end_n begin_v to_o fail_v in_o that_o city_n of_o late_a time_n we_o find_v that_o neither_o that_o zeal_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n nor_o that_o integrity_n and_o honesty_n of_o manner_n which_o be_v in_o the_o ancient_a roman_n do_v continue_v in_o their_o posterity_n adrian_z the_o 6._o in_o his_o instruction_n give_v to_o his_o legate_n that_o be_v send_v into_o germany_n confess_v free_o that_o many_o and_o grievous_a offence_n for_o many_o year_n have_v be_v commit_v at_o rome_n and_o from_o the_o top_n of_o the_o pope_n crown_n pass_v down_o to_o the_o inferior_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o no_o man_n do_v his_o duty_n but_o that_o all_o go_v astray_o and_o none_o be_v void_a of_o fault_n plurimis_fw-la nunc_fw-la annis_fw-la say_v he_o graviter_fw-la multisque_fw-la modis_fw-la peccatum_fw-la est_fw-la romae_fw-la &_o inde_fw-la à_fw-la pontificio_fw-la culmine_fw-la malum_fw-la hoc_fw-la atque_fw-la lues_fw-la ad_fw-la inferiores_fw-la omnes_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la prafectos_fw-la defluxit_fw-la neminem_fw-la enim_fw-la esse_fw-la qui_fw-la suum_fw-la faciat_fw-la munus_fw-la aberrasse_n omnes_fw-la &_o ne_fw-la unum_fw-la quidem_fw-la ex_fw-la omni_fw-la numero_fw-la vacare_fw-la culpa_fw-la duarenus_n in_o praefat_fw-la in_o lib._n the_o eccles_n minist_n &_o benefic_n confesf_v that_o the_o manner_n of_o such_o as_o be_v call_v churchman_n be_v decay_v and_o that_o the_o late_a constitution_n of_o pope_n be_v worse_a than_o the_o first_o illud_fw-la say_v he_o fateri_fw-la velinuiti_fw-la cogimur_fw-la mores_fw-la hominum_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la titulo_fw-la insignitorum_fw-la ita_fw-la paulatim_fw-la degenerasse_fw-la ut_fw-la posteriores_fw-la constitutiones_fw-la pontificumfere_fw-la anterioribus_fw-la cedant_fw-la guicciardine_n lib._n hist_o 2._o show_v how_o the_o authority_n of_o christian_a religion_n grow_v every_o day_n less_o and_o less_o by_o reason_n that_o in_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n man_n be_v altogether_o depart_v from_o ancient_a custom_n le_z cose_z della_fw-it chiesa_fw-mi say_v he_o allontanatesi_n totalment_fw-it dalli_n antichi_fw-it costumi_fw-la facevano_fw-la ogni_fw-la di_fw-it minore_fw-la l'authoritâ_fw-la della_fw-it christiana_n religione_fw-la machiavelli_n in_o his_o florentine_a history_n direct_v to_o clement_n the_o 7._o confess_v that_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o mutation_n that_o have_v happen_v in_o christian_a religion_n great_a scandale_n and_o discord_n have_v grow_v in_o the_o world_n many_o of_o the_o chief_a ruler_n of_o the_o church_n say_v picus_n mirandula_n in_o orat_fw-la ad_fw-la leon._n x._o after_o who_o example_n other_o ought_v to_o conform_v themselves_o have_v either_o little_a or_o no_o religion_n no_o order_n in_o their_o live_n no_o shame_n nor_o modesty_n apud_fw-la plerosque_fw-la religionis_fw-la nostra_fw-la primores_fw-la ad_fw-la quorum_fw-la exemplum_fw-la componi_fw-la &_o formari_fw-la plebs_fw-la ignara_fw-la debuisset_fw-la aut_fw-la nullus_fw-la aut_fw-la certè_fw-la exiguus_fw-la deicultus_fw-la nulla_fw-la bene_fw-la vivendi_fw-la ratio_fw-la atque_fw-la institutio_fw-la nullus_fw-la pudor_fw-la nulla_fw-la modestia_fw-la platina_n in_o gregor_n 4._o wish_v that_o lewes_n pius_n in_o his_o time_n have_v be_v alive_a so_o much_o do_v the_o church_n stand_v in_o need_n of_o his_o law_n res_fw-it &_o pietatemiampridem_fw-la perdidimus_fw-la say_v auentinus_n lib._n 3._o annal_n boiorum_fw-la virtuti_fw-la nullus_fw-la est_fw-la honos_fw-la inuicem_fw-la invidere_fw-la fraudare_fw-la fallere_fw-la longinqua_fw-la consuetudo_fw-la est_fw-la that_o be_v we_o have_v long_o since_o lose_v our_o substance_n and_o piety_n there_o be_v no_o honour_n give_v to_o virtue_n we_o have_v use_v to_o envy_v one_o another_o and_o to_o practice_v fraud_n and_o deceit_n a_o long_a time_n together_o primitivi_fw-la theologi_fw-la say_v petrus_n de_fw-fr aliaco_n lib._n de_fw-la reformat_fw-la eccles_n ecclesiam_fw-la aedificaverunt_fw-la quam_fw-la nunc_fw-la quidam_fw-la baritatores_fw-la destruxerunt_fw-la the_o divine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n build_v the_o church_n but_o now_o certain_a late_a barator_n have_v destroy_v it_o and_o that_o this_o be_v true_a it_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o diverse_a particular_n in_o time_n past_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n suffer_v for_o true_a religion_n now_o they_o cut_v the_o throat_n of_o all_o such_o as_o profess_v truth_n the_o ancient_a bishop_n of_o rome_n feed_v christ_n flock_n and_o be_v subject_a to_o christian_a emperor_n now_o the_o pope_n kill_v christ_n lamb_n and_o set_v their_o foot_n upon_o the_o neck_n of_o emperor_n in_o the_o
of_o christ_n and_o that_o for_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n of_o cosmas_n and_o damianus_n and_o other_o saint_n but_o where_o such_o a_o wicked_a and_o blasphemous_a company_n as_o make_v not_o only_a saint_n but_o also_o the_o idolatrous_a masspriest_n mediator_n for_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n have_v be_v repute_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v visible_a before_o these_o wicked_a missal_n be_v frame_v we_o find_v not_o in_o any_o ancient_a record_n 10._o the_o romish_a church_n worship_v the_o cross_n and_o the_o image_n of_o the_o trinity_n with_o latria_n or_o divine_a worship_n but_o such_o a_o church_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n be_v never_o visible_a in_o the_o world_n 11._o in_o the_o missal_n breviaries_n and_o other_o ritual_a book_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n we_o find_v diverse_a prayer_n and_o confession_n to_o angel_n to_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o other_o saint_n nay_o to_o the_o cross_n and_o the_o image_n give_v to_o veronica_n and_o these_o prayer_n be_v both_o practise_v and_o defend_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o if_o all_o the_o pope_n lanterne-bearer_n and_o disciple_n be_v set_v to_o seek_v for_o such_o a_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n they_o shall_v but_o lose_v their_o labour_n and_o spend_v their_o wit_n in_o vain_a 12._o the_o apostle_n canon_n as_o be_v say_v do_v excommunicate_v such_o as_o do_v not_o communicate_v be_v present_a at_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n we_o may_v not_o therefore_o think_v that_o the_o romish_a synagogue_n be_v visible_a in_o those_o time_n see_v they_o think_v it_o sufficient_a for_o their_o disciple_n to_o be_v present_a at_o the_o mass_n although_o they_o receive_v nothing_o 13._o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n no_o man_n ever_o hear_v that_o christian_n gape_v and_o gaze_v on_o the_o priest_n administer_a the_o lord_n supper_n or_o that_o they_o receive_v the_o one_o kind_n and_o not_o the_o other_o the_o popish_a church_n therefore_o in_o those_o time_n be_v invisible_a 14._o in_o those_o time_n also_o neither_o be_v the_o eucharist_n celebrate_v nor_o the_o scripture_n read_v in_o tongue_n not_o understand_v of_o the_o multitude_n nor_o do_v the_o people_n pray_v in_o strange_a tongue_n which_o they_o understand_v not_o the_o missificall_a congregation_n therefore_o of_o papist_n which_o pray_v not_o know_v what_o they_o say_v and_o be_v present_a at_o the_o read_n of_o scripture_n and_o celebration_n of_o sacrament_n in_o strange_a tongue_n understand_v nothing_o be_v not_o yet_o creep_v out_o of_o cacus_n his_o den_n nor_o apparent_a in_o the_o world_n 15._o the_o modern_a papist_n believe_v that_o such_o as_o in_o this_o life_n satisfy_v not_o for_o their_o sin_n commit_v after_o baptism_n be_v to_o satisfy_v for_o the_o same_o in_o purgatory_n they_o believe_v also_o that_o the_o pope_n by_o his_o indulgence_n be_v able_a to_o redeem_v soul_n out_o of_o purgatory_n and_o to_o remit_v all_o the_o temporal_a pain_n due_a for_o sin_n but_o such_o a_o church_n as_o this_o be_v never_o to_o be_v see_v for_o a_o thousand_o year_n after_o christ_n to_o abridge_v this_o discourse_n it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n by_o diverse_a other_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o diverse_a other_o custom_n in_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n and_o diverse_a other_o form_n of_o government_n all_o new_o invent_v practise_v and_o maintain_v by_o the_o synagogue_n of_o rome_n to_o declare_v and_o prove_v that_o the_o same_o be_v a_o new_a model_n of_o a_o church_n never_o see_v nor_o know_v to_o antiquity_n but_o by_o these_o few_o particular_n the_o same_o do_v most_o clear_o appear_v already_o if_o the_o papist_n then_o seek_v to_o bring_v we_o back_o to_o the_o form_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n then_o must_v they_o abandon_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o adherent_n embrace_v the_o modern_a faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o sacrament_n late_o broach_v by_o the_o idle_a schoolman_n and_o confirm_v in_o the_o late_a conventicle_n of_o trent_n and_o adhere_v to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o as_o it_o profess_v the_o apostle_n doctrine_n publish_v by_o ancient_a counsel_n of_o the_o church_n so_o it_o renounce_v all_o heresy_n and_o nouclty_n bring_v in_o by_o papist_n and_o other_o heretic_n and_o as_o it_o renounce_v their_o false_a doctrine_n so_o it_o detest_v their_o treacherous_a practice_n chap._n lii_o that_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n and_o motive_n to_o the_o modern_a romish_a faith_n allege_v by_o papist_n may_v as_o well_o be_v allege_v by_o heathen_a man_n and_o turk_n as_o by_o they_o all_o this_o notwithstanding_o the_o papist_n challenge_v to_o themselves_o the_o name_n title_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o bring_v forth_o a_o whole_a squadron_n of_o motive_n to_o draw_v simple_a soul_n to_o like_v of_o their_o sect_n and_o to_o entangle_v they_o with_o their_o error_n bellarmine_n de_fw-fr notis_fw-la eccles_n c._n 3._o say_v that_o the_o proper_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n be_v these_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n antiquity_n continuance_n universality_n succession_n of_o bishop_n consent_n in_o doctrine_n miracle_n prophecy_n temporal_a felicity_n and_o such_o like_a other_o bring_v unity_n universality_n holiness_n of_o life_n and_o such_o like_a bristol_n in_o his_o motive_n stand_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n and_o heretic_n miracle_n vision_n scripture_n tradition_n father_n martyr_n go_v out_o rising_z afterward_o succession_n immutability_n unity_n judge_n infallible_a obedient_a subject_n visibility_n and_o other_o mark_n of_o like_a nature_n but_o as_o well_o may_v the_o turk_n and_o idolatrous_a heathen_a nation_n allege_v these_o mark_n and_o motive_n as_o the_o papist_n and_o some_o of_o they_o do_v better_o agree_v to_o turk_n and_o idolatrous_a paynim_n then_o to_o idolatrous_a and_o heretical_a papist_n for_o as_o papist_n call_v themselves_o catholic_n and_o give_v the_o name_n of_o heretic_n to_o other_o so_o do_v the_o turk_n call_v themselves_o musulman_n or_o true_a believer_n and_o heathen_a idolater_n call_v themselves_o pious_a worshipper_n of_o the_o god_n and_o in_o regard_n of_o themselves_o both_o turk_n and_o paynim_n take_v christian_n to_o be_v impious_a person_n and_o heretic_n the_o turk_n call_v papist_n idolater_n and_o the_o heathen_a in_o time_n pass_v call_v christian_n atheist_n as_o for_o antiquity_n it_o agree_v far_o better_o to_o paynim_n and_o turk_n then_o to_o papist_n for_o heathen_a idolatry_n be_v long_o before_o the_o doctrine_n of_o popery_n and_o the_o alcoran_n be_v more_o ancient_a than_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la that_o be_v publish_v by_o mahomet_n within_o 630._o year_n after_o christ_n these_o be_v commend_v and_o confirm_v by_o gregory_n the_o 9_o who_o enter_v a_o d._n 1227._o 3._o idolatry_n as_o it_o begin_v soon_o after_o the_o flood_n so_o it_o have_v ever_o since_o continue_v the_o blasphemous_a religion_n of_o turk_n har●_n continue_v ever_o since_o the_o time_n of_o mahomet_n but_o popery_n never_o receive_v a_o perfect_a form_n before_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n and_o in_o most_o place_n now_o be_v decay_v 4._o the_o heathen_a idolater_n allege_v for_o themselves_o amplitude_n and_o universality_n as_o well_o as_o the_o papist_n and_o so_o may_v the_o turk_n also_o for_o in_o time_n past_o all_o nation_n worship_v idol_n fave_v the_o jew_n and_o in_o our_o time_n far_o more_o nation_n be_v delude_v by_o mahomet_n and_o his_o priest_n then_o by_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o masspriest_n the_o pope_n doctrine_n be_v confine_v within_o a_o few_o nation_n of_o europe_n mahometisme_n posless_v the_o great_a part_n of_o asia_n and_o africa_n and_o no_o small_a part_n of_o europe_n 5._o the_o turk_n ever_o since_o mahomet_n have_v have_v a_o succession_n of_o caliphaes_n and_o priest_n and_o among_o the_o heathen_a there_o never_o want_v a_o descent_n of_o sacrifice_a idolater_n but_o the_o papist_n can_v derive_v their_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n either_o in_o doctrine_n or_o descent_n of_o pope_n for_o neither_o be_v their_o doctrine_n apostolical_a nor_o be_v the_o pope_n the_o apostle_n successor_n beside_o that_o they_o be_v uncerteine_a both_o who_o be_v true_a pope_n and_o which_o succeed_v after_o peter_n and_o diverse_a bishop_n and_o pope_n of_o rome_n 6._o the_o paynim_n with_o one_o consent_n in_o time_n pass_v worship_v idol_n neither_o do_v any_o one_o among_o they_o call_v the_o matter_n in_o question_n the_o turk_n be_v so_o resolute_a in_o religion_n that_o they_o will_v have_v no_o dispute_v against_o any_o point_n of_o their_o doctrine_n but_o popish_a schoolman_n call_v all_o point_n of_o their_o religion_n in_o question_n neither_o do_v they_o so_o well_o agree_v in_o any_o article_n but_o there_o be_v some_o that_o hold_v singular_a opinion_n the_o scotist_n differ_v from_o the_o thomist_n and_o diverse_a opinion_n be_v hold_v by_o
half_a their_o authority_n three_o bellarmine_n and_o other_o exempt_v the_o person_n of_o the_o clergy_n from_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o temporal_a lord_n do_v it_o not_o then_o appear_v that_o popish_a king_n be_v commander_n but_o of_o one_o half_a of_o their_o subject_n last_o they_o do_v exempt_v the_o good_n of_o the_o clergy_n from_o the_o disposition_n of_o the_o prince_n so_o we_o may_v see_v that_o the_o king_n lose_v half_a his_o revenue_n where_o popish_a religion_n bear_v sway_n to_o conclude_v therefore_o it_o be_v apparent_a by_o the_o premise_n that_o all_o true_a papist_n profess_v and_o practise_v the_o pope_n doctrine_n be_v utter_a enemy_n and_o in_o hart_n evil_o affect_v to_o king_n profess_v a_o contrary_a religion_n and_o depend_v on_o strange_a and_o foreign_a prince_n rather_o than_o upon_o their_o own_o king_n well_o they_o may_v temporize_v have_v dispensation_n for_o it_o but_o if_o opportunity_n be_v offer_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o faction_n to_o show_v their_o malice_n we_o may_v assure_v ourselves_o we_o shall_v find_v they_o like_o our_o english_a powder-man_n that_o be_v traitor_n and_o enemy_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o state_n and_o king_n profess_v popery_n be_v but_o the_o pope_n vassal_n and_o underling_n and_o during_o the_o pope_n good_a will_n and_o pleasure_n further_o they_o have_v but_o half_o their_o kingly_a authority_n and_o rule_v but_o half_a their_o subject_n and_o lose_v half_a their_o revenue_n which_o whosoever_o either_o teach_v or_o allow_v he_o may_v say_v and_o swear_v obedience_n in_o temporal_a matter_n as_o long_o as_o he_o listen_v but_o wise_a man_n will_v never_o hold_v he_o for_o other_o than_o a_o temporary_a and_o undutiful_a subject_n chap._n liiii_o that_o such_o papist_n as_o positive_o hold_v all_o the_o heretical_a and_o false_a doctrine_n of_o the_o modern_a church_n of_o rome_n can_v possible_o be_v save_v there_o be_v many_o false_a prophet_n go_v out_o into_o the_o world_n say_v s._n john_n 1._o epist_n 4._o speak_v of_o his_o time_n and_o revelat._n 9_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o in_o the_o late_a time_n of_o the_o church_n a_o star_n shall_v fall_v from_o heaven_n and_o that_o he_o that_o be_v signify_v by_o that_o star_n shall_v open_v the_o bottomless_a pit_n out_o of_o the_o smoke_n whereof_o shall_v come_v locust_n that_o have_v hair_n like_o woman_n tooth_n like_o lion_n habergeon_n of_o iron_n and_o tail_n like_o scorpion_n we_o may_v not_o therefore_o think_v but_o that_o now_o also_o false_a prophet_n be_v stir_v abroad_o and_o that_o swarm_n of_o locust_n be_v fly_v in_o every_o kingdom_n seek_v by_o gloze_a pretence_n to_o deceive_v the_o simple_a by_o viperous_a calumniation_n to_o bite_v true_a teacher_n with_o arm_n to_o oppugn_v prince_n and_o with_o the_o poison_n and_o relic_n of_o their_o heroly_n to_o sting_n and_o hurt_v all_o that_o shall_v profess_v the_o truth_n the_o jebusite_n and_o their_o consort_n the_o friar_n and_o masspriest_n pretend_v the_o save_n of_o man_n soul_n but_o they_o be_v false_a teacher_n and_o the_o very_a locust_n mention_v by_o s._n john_n and_o send_v forth_o by_o the_o pope_n design_v by_o the_o star_n apocalyps_n 9_o let_v all_o papist_n therefore_o beware_v how_o they_o listen_v to_o their_o heretical_a and_o damnable_a doctrine_n which_o who_o so_o believe_v and_o follow_v positive_o can_v be_v sane_v the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v true_a if_o any_o man_n say_v john_n ren._n 14._o worship_v the_o beast_n and_o his_o image_n and_o receive_v his_o mark_n in_o his_o forehead_n or_o in_o his_o hand_n the_o same_o shall_v drink_v of_o the_o wine_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n afterward_o he_o say_v he_o shall_v be_v torment_v in_o fire_n and_o brimstome_n before_o the_o holy_a angel_n and_o before_o the_o lamb_n but_o whosoever_o be_v reconcile_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o submit_v himself_o to_o the_o law_n and_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n do_v worship_n the_o beast_n and_o his_o image_n whosoever_o open_o profess_v popery_n receive_v the_o pope_n mark_n in_o his_o forehead_n whosoever_o yield_v to_o the_o practice_n of_o romish_a religion_n receive_v his_o mark_n in_o his_o hand_n let_v papist_n therefore_o stand_v upon_o their_o guard_n and_o look_v well_o to_o their_o conscience_n for_o albeit_o sanders_n and_o bellarmine_n with_o all_o their_o skill_n have_v endeavour_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o antichrist_n yet_o all_o bellarmine_n wrangle_a discourse_n be_v refute_v in_o my_o five_o book_n de_fw-fr pontif._n rom._n and_o sanders_n his_o demonstration_n stand_v also_o dissolve_v by_o m._n whitaker_n of_o pious_a memory_n beside_o that_o neither_o they_o nor_o any_o of_o their_o consort_n can_v assign_v any_o other_o state_n unto_o who_o these_o prophecy_n may_v so_o well_o agree_v as_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o kingdom_n if_o then_o our_o reason_n can_v resolve_v they_o yet_o the_o perplexity_n of_o our_o adversity_n in_o this_o controversy_n may_v help_v to_o inform_v they_o and_o persuade_v they_o that_o the_o beast_n there_o speak_v of_o be_v the_o pope_n and_o that_o his_o image_n be_v the_o romish_a government_n whereby_o the_o old_a empire_n of_o rome_n be_v in_o a_o certain_a sort_n represent_v and_o restore_v furthermore_o apocalyps_n 22._o we_o find_v that_o dog_n enchanter_n whoremonger_n murderer_n idolater_n and_o whosoever_o love_v or_o make_v lie_n shall_v be_v exclude_v out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o like_a to_o dog_n the_o pope_n and_o his_o adherent_n refuse_v god_n word_n preach_v unto_o they_o and_o tear_v they_o in_o piece_n that_o seek_v to_o feed_v they_o with_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n diverse_a of_o the_o pope_n have_v be_v great_a magician_n necromancer_n and_o enchanter_n as_o benet_n the_o 9_o gregory_n the_o 6._o and_o 7._o sylvester_n the_o 2._o paul_n the_o 3._o and_o many_o of_o their_o follower_n follow_v also_o but_o too_o much_o this_o damnable_a practice_n the_o masspriest_n like_o cunning_a enchanter_n suppose_v that_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v turn_v into_o flesh_n and_o blood_n in_o their_o magical_a mass_n they_o permit_v public_a stew_n keep_v concubine_n and_o to_o monk_n friar_n and_o masspriest_n forbid_v lawful_a marriage_n they_o have_v murder_v and_o massacre_v million_o of_o christian_n to_o erect_v and_o uphold_v their_o antichristian_a kingdom_n the_o 5._o of_o november_n last_o they_o attempt_v a_o treason_n never_o before_o hear_v of_o mind_v to_o murder_v the_o king_n his_o lord_n and_o the_o commons_o assemble_v in_o parliament_n and_o to_o massacre_v all_o opposite_a to_o they_o throughout_o the_o realm_n they_o erect_v idol_n in_o church_n and_o every_o corner_n of_o their_o street_n and_o in_o high_a way_n give_v latriam_fw-la and_o divine_a honour_n to_o the_o cross_n and_o to_o the_o image_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o call_v the_o sacrament_n their_o lord_n and_o god_n and_o make_v vow_n prayer_n confession_n to_o saint_n and_o burn_a incense_n to_o image_n and_o say_v mass_n in_o the_o honour_n of_o saint_n and_o angel_n final_o they_o do_v not_o only_o forge_v stander_n against_o m._n luther_n zuinglius_fw-la caluin_n and_o other_o true_a teacher_n but_o also_o against_o we_o all_o as_o if_o we_o teach_v that_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o sin_n and_o that_o christ_n despair_v that_o there_o be_v no_o hell_n but_o horror_n of_o conscience_n and_o such_o like_a abominable_a doctrine_n which_o we_o express_o detest_v they_o give_v out_o also_o that_o we_o condemn_v good_a work_n and_o teach_v rebellion_n and_o their_o hearer_n delight_v to_o hear_v these_o lie_n s._n paul_n have_v rehearse_v diverse_a work_n of_o the_o flesh_n gal._n 5._o and_o namely_o adultery_n fornication_n uncleanness_n wantonness_n idolatry_n witchcraft_n and_o diverse_a other_o of_o that_o nature_n and_o among_o the_o rest_n heresy_n sedition_n he_o conclude_v that_o those_o that_o do_v such_o thing_n shall_v not_o inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n but_o never_o be_v any_o sect_n more_o subject_a to_o these_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n than_o the_o papist_n their_o idolatry_n heresy_n rebellion_n murder_n and_o witchcraft_n i_o have_v before_o note_v adultery_n and_o fornication_n they_o account_v to_o be_v small_a sin_n c._n at_o si_fw-la clerici_fw-la de_fw-fr indicijs_fw-la their_o unnatural_a lust_n be_v testify_v in_o diverse_a record_n and_o book_n their_o clergy_n can_v choose_v but_o be_v unclean_a when_o they_o resuse_v marriage_n and_o forswear_v it_o their_o massacre_n and_o murder_n and_o rebellion_n be_v record_v in_o many_o history_n and_o the_o memory_n thereof_o will_v now_o be_v record_v in_o act_n of_o parliament_n that_o they_o allow_v public_a stew_n themselves_o deny_v not_o and_o do_v they_o think_v that_o wallow_v like_o swine_n in_o their_o fleshly_a work_n they_o shall_v be_v save_v athanasius_n in_o the_o end_n of_o his_o creed_n say_v it_o be_v